<SPAN name="startofbook"></SPAN>
<div class='lgc'>
<p class='line' style='margin-top:2.0em;font-size:1.4em;'>NOTHING BUT THE TRUTH</p>
<p class='line'> </p>
<p class='line'>By</p>
<p class='line'> </p>
<p class='line'>FREDERIC S. ISHAM</p>
<p class='line'> </p>
<p class='line' style='margin-top:2.0em;'>Author of</p>
<p class='line'>The Strollers, Under the Rose,</p>
<p class='line'>The Social Buccaneer, Etc.</p>
<p class='line'> </p>
<p class='line' style='margin-top:2.0em;'>INDIANAPOLIS</p>
<p class='line'>THE BOBBS-MERRILL COMPANY</p>
<p class='line'>PUBLISHERS</p>
</div>
<hr class='pb'/>
<div class='lgc'>
<p class='line'>Copyright 1914</p>
<p class='line'>The Bobbs-Merrill Company</p>
<p class='line'> </p>
<p class='line'>PRESS OF</p>
<p class='line'>BRAUNWORTH & CO.</p>
<p class='line'>BOOKBINDERS AND PRINTERS</p>
<p class='line'>BROOKLYN, N. Y.</p>
</div>
<hr class='pb'/>
<div class='literal-container'>
<p class='toch'>Table of Contents</p>
<div class='literal'>
<p class='toc'><SPAN href='#t36'>THE TEMERITY OF BOB</SPAN></p>
<p class='toc'><SPAN href='#t416'>A TRY-OUT</SPAN></p>
<p class='toc'><SPAN href='#t842'>AN INAUSPICIOUS BEGINNING</SPAN></p>
<p class='toc'><SPAN href='#t1344'>A CHAT ON THE LINKS</SPAN></p>
<p class='toc'><SPAN href='#t1691'>TRIVIALITIES</SPAN></p>
<p class='toc'><SPAN href='#t2169'>DINNER</SPAN></p>
<p class='toc'><SPAN href='#t2519'>VARYING VICISSITUDES</SPAN></p>
<p class='toc'><SPAN href='#t3016'>NEW COMPLICATIONS</SPAN></p>
<p class='toc'><SPAN href='#t3480'>ANOTHER SURPRISE</SPAN></p>
<p class='toc'><SPAN href='#t3890'>INTO BONDAGE</SPAN></p>
<p class='toc'><SPAN href='#t4457'>FISHING</SPAN></p>
<p class='toc'><SPAN href='#t4912'>JUST ONE THING AFTER ANOTHER</SPAN></p>
<p class='toc'><SPAN href='#t5278'>AN ENFORCED REST CURE</SPAN></p>
<p class='toc'><SPAN href='#t5732'>MUTINY</SPAN></p>
<p class='toc'><SPAN href='#t6171'>AN EXTRAORDINARY INTERVIEW</SPAN></p>
<p class='toc'><SPAN href='#t6623'>PLAYING WITH BOB</SPAN></p>
<p class='toc'><SPAN href='#t7167'>A GOOD DEAL OF GEE-GEE</SPAN></p>
<p class='toc'><SPAN href='#t7656'>A FORMIDABLE ADVERSARY</SPAN></p>
<p class='toc'><SPAN href='#t8150'>BOB FORGETS HIMSELF</SPAN></p>
<p class='toc'><SPAN href='#t8645'>HAND-READING</SPAN></p>
<p class='toc'><SPAN href='#t9120'>HEART OF STONE</SPAN></p>
<p class='toc'><SPAN href='#t9668'>A REAL BENEFACTOR</SPAN></p>
<p class='toc'><SPAN href='#t10275'>MAKING GOOD</SPAN></p>
<p class='toc'><SPAN href='#t10676'>AT THE PORTALS</SPAN></p>
</div>
</div>
<hr class='pb'/>
<p class='line' style='text-align:center;font-size:1.2em;'>NOTHING BUT THE TRUTH</p>
<h1 id='t36'>CHAPTER I—THE TEMERITY OF BOB</h1>
<p>“It can’t be done.”</p>
<p>“Of course, it can.”</p>
<p>“A man couldn’t survive the ordeal.”</p>
<p>“Could do it myself.”</p>
<p>The scene was the University Club. The talk
spread over a good deal of space, as talk will when
pink cocktails, or “green gardens in a glass” confront,
or are in front of, the talkees. Dickie said it couldn’t
be done and Bob said it was possible and that he could
do it. He might not have felt such confidence had it
not been for the verdant stimulation. He could have
done anything just then, so why not this particular
feat or stunt? And who was this temerarious one and
what was he like?</p>
<p>As an excellent specimen of a masculine young animal,
genus homo, Bob Bennett was good to look on.
Some of those young ladies who wave banners when
young men strain their backs and their arms and their
legs in the cause of learning, had, in the days of the
not remote past, dubbed him, sub rosa, the “blue-eyed
Apollo.” Some of the fellows not so euphemistically
inclined had, however, during that same glorious period
found frequent occasion to refer to him less classically,
if more truthfully, as “that darn fool, Bob Bennett.”
That was on account of a streak of wildness in him,
for he was a free bold creature, was Bob. Conventional
bars and gates chafed him. He may have
looked like a “blue-eyed Apollo,” but his spirit had
the wings of a wild goose, than which there are no
faster birds—for a wild goose is the biplane of the
empyrean.</p>
<p>Now that Bob had ceased the chase for learning
and was out in the wide world, he should have acquired
an additional sobriquet—that of “Impecunious
Bob.” It would have fitted his pecuniary condition
very nicely. Once he had had great expectations, but
alas!—dad had just “come a cropper.” They had
sheared him on the street. The world in general didn’t
know about it yet, but Bob did.</p>
<p>“We’re broke, Bob,” said dad that very morning.</p>
<p>“That’s all right, Gov.,” said Bob. “Can you get
up?”</p>
<p>“I can’t even procure a pair of crutches to hobble
with,” answered dad.</p>
<p>“Never mind,” observed Bob magnanimously.
“You’ve done pretty well by me up to date. Don’t
you worry or reproach yourself. I’m not going to
heap abuse on those gray hairs.”</p>
<p>“Thanks, Bob.” Coolly. “<em>I’m</em> not worrying. You
see, it’s up to you now.”</p>
<p>“Me?” Bob stared.</p>
<p>“Yes. You see I believe in the Japanese method.”</p>
<p>“What’s that?” Uneasily.</p>
<p>“Duty of a child to support his parent, when said
child is grown up!”</p>
<p>Bob whistled. “Say, Gov., do you mean it?”</p>
<p>“Gospel truth, Bob.”</p>
<p>Bob whistled again. “Not joking?”</p>
<p>“’Pon honor!” Cheerfully.</p>
<p>“I never did like the Japanese,” from Bob, sotto
voce. “Blame lot of heathens—that’s what they are!”</p>
<p>“I’ve got a dollar or two that I owe tucked away
where no one can find it except me,” went on dad, unmindful
of Bob’s little soliloquy. “That will have to
last until you come to the rescue.”</p>
<p>“Gee! I’m glad you were thoughtful enough for
that!” ejaculated the young man. “Sure you can keep
it hidden?”</p>
<p>“Burglars couldn’t find it,” said dad confidently,
“let alone my creditors—God bless them! But it won’t
last long, Bob. Bear that in mind. It’ll be a mighty
short respite.”</p>
<p>“Oh, I’ll not forget it. If—if it’s not an impertinence,
may I ask what <em>you</em> are going to do, dad?”</p>
<p>“I’m contemplating a fishing trip, first of all, and
after that—quien sabe? Some pleasure suitable to my
retired condition will undoubtedly suggest itself. I
may take up the study of philosophy. Confucius has
always interested me. They say it takes forty years
to read him and then forty years to digest what you
have read. The occupation would, no doubt, prove
adequate. But don’t concern yourself about that, dear
boy. I’ll get on. You owe me a large debt of gratitude.
I’m thrusting a great responsibility on you. It
should be the making of you.” Bob had his secret
doubts. “Get out and hustle, dear boy. It’s up to
you, now!” And he spread out his hands in care-free
fashion and smiled blandly. No Buddha could have
appeared more complacent—only instead of a lotus
flower, Bob’s dad held in his hand a long black weed,
the puffing of which seemed to afford a large measure
of ecstatic satisfaction. “Go!” He waved the free
hand. “My blessing on your efforts.”</p>
<p>Bob started to go, and then he lingered. “Perhaps,”
he said, “you can tell me <em>what</em> I am going to do?”</p>
<p>“Don’t know.” Cheerfully.</p>
<p>“What <em>can</em> I do?” Hopelessly.</p>
<p>“Couldn’t say.”</p>
<p>“I don’t know <em>anything</em>.”</p>
<p>“Ha! ha!” Dad laughed, as if son had sprung a
joke. “Well, that is a condition experience will remove.
Experience <em>and</em> hard knocks,” he added.</p>
<p>Bob swore softly. His head was humming. No
heroic purpose to get out and fight his way moved
him. He didn’t care about shoveling earth, or chopping
down trees. He had no frenzied desire to brave
the sixty-below-zero temperature of the Klondike in a
mad search for gold. In a word, he didn’t feel at all
like the heroes in the books who conquer under almost
impossible conditions in the vastnesses of the “open,”
and incidentally whallop a few herculean simple-minded
sons of nature, just to prove that breed is
better than brawn.</p>
<p>“Of course, I could give you a little advice, Bob,”
said the governor softly. “If you should find hustling
a bit arduous for one of your luxurious nature, there’s
an alternative. It is always open to a young man upon
whom nature has showered her favors.”</p>
<p>“Don’t know what you mean by that last,” growled
Bob, who disliked personalities. “But what is the alternative
to hustling?”</p>
<p>“Get married,” said dad coolly.</p>
<p>Bob changed color. Dad watched him keenly.</p>
<p>“There’s always the matrimonial market for young
men who have not learned to specialize. I’ve known
many such marriages to turn out happily, too. Marrying
right, my boy, is a practical, not a sentimental business.”</p>
<p>Bob looked disgusted.</p>
<p>“There’s Miss Gwendoline Gerald, for example.
Millions in her own name, and—”</p>
<p>“Hold on, dad!” cried Bob. His face was flaming
now. The blue eyes gleamed almost fiercely.</p>
<p>“I knew you were acquainted,” observed dad softly,
still studying him. “Besides she’s a beautiful girl
and—”</p>
<p>“Drop it, dad!” burst from Bob. “We’ve never had
a quarrel, but—” Suddenly he realized his attitude
was actually menacing. And toward dad—his own
dad! “I beg your pardon, sir,” he muttered contritely.
“I’m afraid I am forgetting myself. But please turn
the talk.”</p>
<p>“All right,” said dad. “I forgive you. I was only
trying to elucidate your position. But since it’s not to
be the matrimonial market, it’ll have to be a hustle, my
boy. I’m too old to make another fortune. I’ve done
my bit and now I’m going to retire on my son. Sounds
fair and equitable, doesn’t it, Bob?”</p>
<p>“I’d hate to contradict you, sir,” the other answered
moodily.</p>
<p>Dad walked up to him and laid an arm affectionately
upon son’s broad shoulders. “I’ve the utmost
confidence in you, my boy,” he said, with a bland
smile.</p>
<p>“Thank you, sir,” replied Bob. He always preserved
an attitude of filial respect toward his one and
only parent. But he tore himself away from dad now
as soon as he could. He wanted to think. The average
hero, thrust out into the world, has only a single
load to carry. He has only to earn a living for himself.
Bob’s load was a double one and therefore he
would have to be a double hero. Mechanically he
walked on and on, cogitating upon his unenviable fate.
Suddenly he stopped. He found himself in front of
the club. Bob went in. And there he met Dickie,
Clarence, Dan the doughty “commodore” and some
others.</p>
<hr class='tb'/>
<p>That Impecunious Bob should have said “It could
be done” to Imperial Dickie’s “It couldn’t” and have
allowed himself to be drawn further into the affair
was, in itself, an impertinence. For Dickie was a person
of importance. He had a string of simoleons so
long that a newspaper-mathematician once computed
if you spread them out, touching one another, they
would reach half around the world. Or was it twice
around? Anyhow, Dickie didn’t have to worry about
hustling, the way Bob did now. At the moment the
latter was in a mood to contradict any one. He felt
reckless. He was ready for almost anything—short
of an imitation of that back-to-nature hero of a popular
novel.</p>
<p>They had been going on about that “could” and
“couldn’t” proposition for some time when some one
staked Bob. That some one was promptly “called” by
the “commodore”—as jolly a sea-dog as never trod
a deck. Dan was a land-commodore, but he was very
popular at the Yacht Club, where something besides
waves seethed when he was around. He didn’t go
often to the University Club where he complained
things were too pedagogic. (No one else ever complained
of that.) He liked to see the decks—or
floors—wave. Then he was in his element and would issue
orders with the blithe abandon of a son of Neptune.
There was no delay in “clapping on sail” when the
commodore was at the helm. And if he said: “Clear
the decks for action,” there was action. When he did
occasionally drift into the University, he brought with
him the flavor of the sea. Things at once breezed up.</p>
<p>Well, the commodore called that some one quick.</p>
<p>“Five thousand he can’t do it.”</p>
<p>“For how long?” says Dickie.</p>
<p>“A week,” answered the commodore.</p>
<p>“Make it two.”</p>
<p>“Oh, very well.”</p>
<p>“Three, if you like!” from Bob, the stormy petrel.</p>
<p>They gazed at him admiringly.</p>
<p>“It isn’t the green garden talking, is it, Bob?” asked
Clarence Van Duzen whose sole occupation was being
a director in a few corporations—or, more strictly
speaking, <em>not</em> being one. It took almost all Clarence’s
time to “direct” his wife, or try to.</p>
<p>Bob looked at Clarence reproachfully. “No,” he
said. “I’m still master of all my thoughts.” Gloomily.
“I couldn’t forget if I tried.”</p>
<p>“That’s all right, then,” said Dickie.</p>
<p>Then Clarence “took” some one else who staked
Bob. And Dickie did likewise. And there was some
more talk. And then Bob staked himself.</p>
<p>“Little short of cash at the bank just now,” he observed.
“But if you’ll take my note—”</p>
<p>“Take your word if you want,” said the commodore.</p>
<p>“No; here’s my note.” He gave it—a large amount—payable
in thirty days. It was awful, but he did
it. He hardly thought what he was doing. Having
the utmost confidence he would win, he didn’t stop
to realize what a large contract he was taking on.
But Dan, Dickie, Clarence and the others did.</p>
<p>“Of course, you can’t go away and hide,” said
Dickie to Bob with sudden suspicion.</p>
<p>“No; you can’t do that,” from Clarence. “Or get
yourself arrested and locked up for three weeks! That
wouldn’t be fair, old chap.”</p>
<p>“Bob understands he’s got to go on in the even
tenor of his way,” said the commodore.</p>
<p>Bob nodded. “Just as if nothing had happened!” he
observed. “I’ll not seek, or I’ll not shirk. I’m on
honor, you understand.”</p>
<p>“That’s good enough for me!” said Dickie. “Bob’s
honest.”</p>
<p>“And me!” from Clarence.</p>
<p>“And me!” from half a dozen other good souls,
including the non-aqueous commodore.</p>
<p>“Gentlemen, I thank you,” said Bob, affected by
this outburst of confidence. “I thank you for this
display of—this display—”</p>
<p>“Cut it!”</p>
<p>“Cork it up! And speaking of corks—”</p>
<p>“When does it begin?” interrupted Bob.</p>
<p>“When you walk out of here,”</p>
<p>“At the front door?”</p>
<p>“When your foot touches the sidewalk, son.” The
commodore who was about forty in years sometimes
assumed the paternal.</p>
<p>“Never mind the ‘son.’” Bob shuddered. “One
father at a time, please!” And then hastily, not to
seem ungracious: “I’ve got such a jolly good, real
dad, you understand—”</p>
<p>The commodore dropped the paternal. “Well, lads,
here’s a bumper to Bob,” he said.</p>
<p>“We see his finish.”</p>
<p>“No doubt of that.”</p>
<p>“To Bob! Good old Bob! Ho! ho!”</p>
<p>“Ha! ha!” said Bob funereally.</p>
<p>Then he got up.</p>
<p>“Going?”</p>
<p>“Might as well.”</p>
<p>The commodore drew out a watch.</p>
<p>“Twelve minutes after three p.m. Monday, the
twelfth of September, in the year of our Lord, 1813,”
he said. “You are all witnesses of the time the ball
was opened?”</p>
<p>“We are.”</p>
<p>“Good-by, Bob.”</p>
<p>“Oh, let’s go with him a way!”</p>
<p>“<em>Might</em> be interesting,” from Clarence sardonically.</p>
<p>“It might. Least we can do is to see him start on
his way rejoicing.”</p>
<p>“That’s so. Come on.” Which they did.</p>
<p>Bob offered no objection. He didn’t much care at
the time whether they did or not. What would happen
would. He braced himself for the inevitable.</p>
<h1 id='t416'>CHAPTER II—A TRY-OUT</h1>
<p>To tell the truth—to blurt out nothing but the
truth to every one, and on every occasion, for
three whole weeks—that’s what Bob had contracted
to do. From the point of view of the commodore
and the others, the man who tried to fill this contract
would certainly be shot, or electrocuted, or ridden out
of town on a rail, or receive a coat of tar and
feathers. And Bob had such a wide circle of friends,
too, which would make his task the harder; the handsome
dog was popular. He was asked everywhere
that was anywhere and he went, too. He would certainly
“get his.” The jovial commodore was delighted.
He would have a whole lot of fun at Bob’s
expense. Wasn’t the latter the big boob, though? And
wouldn’t he be put through his paces? Really it promised
to be delicious. The commodore and the others
went along with Bob just for a little try-out.</p>
<p>At first nothing especially interesting happened.
They walked without meeting any one they were
acquainted with. Transients! transients! where did
they all come from? Once on their progress down the
avenue the hopes of Bob’s friends rose high. A car
they knew got held up on a side street not far away
from them. It was a gorgeous car and it had a gorgeous
occupant, but a grocery wagon was between
them and it. The commodore warbled blithely.</p>
<p>“Come on, Bob. Time for a word or two!”</p>
<p>But handsome Bob shook his head. “The ‘even
tenor of his way,’” he quoted. “I don’t ordinarily
go popping in and out between wheels like a rabbit.
I’m not looking to commit suicide.”</p>
<p>“Oh, I only wanted to say: ‘How do you do,’” retorted
the commodore rather sulkily. “Or ‘May I
tango with you at tea this afternoon, Mrs. Ralston?’”</p>
<p>“Or observe: ‘How young she looks to-day, eh,
Bob?’” murmured that young gentleman suspiciously.</p>
<p>“Artful! Artful!” Clarence poked the commodore
in the ribs. “Sly old sea-dog!”</p>
<p>“Well, let’s move on,” yawned Dickie. “Nothing
doing here.”</p>
<p>“Wait!” The commodore had an idea. “Hi, you
young grocery lad, back up a little, will you?”</p>
<p>“Wha’ for?” said the boy, aggressive at once. Babes
are born in New York with chips on their shoulders.</p>
<p>“As a matter of trifling accommodation, that is all,”
answered the commodore sweetly. “On the other side
of you is a stately car and we would hold conversation
with—”</p>
<p>“Aw, gwan! Guess I got as much right to the
street as it has.” And as a display of his “rights,”
he even touched up his horse a few inches, to intervene
more thoroughly.</p>
<p>“Perhaps now for half a dollar—” began the commodore,
more insinuatingly. Then he groaned: “Too
late!” The policeman had lifted the ban. The stately
car turned into the avenue and was swallowed up
amid a myriad of more or less imposing vehicles. They
had, however, received a bow from the occupant. That
was all there had been opportunity for. Incidentally,
the small boy had bestowed upon them his parting
compliments:</p>
<p>“Smart old guy! You think youse—” The rest
was jumbled up or lost in the usual cacophony of the
thoroughfare.</p>
<p>“Too bad!” murmured the commodore. “But still
these three weeks are young.”</p>
<p>“‘Three weeks!’” observed Dickie. “Sounds like
plagiarism!”</p>
<p>“Oh, Bob won’t have that kind of a ‘three weeks,’”
snickered Clarence.</p>
<p>“Bob’s will be an expurgated edition,” from the commodore,
recovering his spirits.</p>
<p>“Maybe we ought to make it four?”</p>
<p>“Three will do,” said Bob, who wasn’t enjoying
this chaffing. Every one they approached he now
eyed apprehensively.</p>
<p>But he was a joy-giver, if not receiver, for his tall
handsome figure attracted many admiring glances. His
striking head with its blond curls—they weren’t exactly
curls, only his hair wasn’t straight, but clung
rather wavy-like to the bold contour of his head—his
careless stride, and that general effect of young
masculinity—all this caused sundry humble feminine
hearts to go pit-a-pat. Bob’s progress, however, was
generally followed by pit-a-pats from shop-girls and
bonnet-bearers. Especially at the noon hour! Then
Bob seemed to these humble toilers, like dessert, after
hard-boiled eggs, stale sandwiches and pickles.</p>
<p>But Bob was quite unaware of any approving
glances cast after him. He was thinking, and thinking
hard. He wasn’t so sanguine now as he had been
when he had left the club. What might have happened
at that street corner appealed to him with sudden
poignant force. Mrs. Ralston was of the <em>creme
de la creme</em>. She was determined to stay young. She
pretended to be thirty years or so younger than she
was. In fact, she was rather a ridiculous old lady
who found it hard to conceal her age. Now what if
the commodore had found opportunity to ask that
awful question? Bob could have made only one reply
and told the truth. The largeness of his contract
was becoming more apparent to him. He began to
see himself now from Dan’s standpoint. Incidentally,
he was beginning to develop a great dislike for that
genial land-mariner.</p>
<p>“How about the Waldorf?” They had paused at
the corner of Thirty-fourth Street. “May find some
one there,” suggested Clarence.</p>
<p>“In Peek-a-Boo Alley?” scornfully from Dickie.</p>
<p>“Oh, I heard there was a concert, or something upstairs,”
said Clarence. “In that you’ve-got-to-be-introduced
room! And some of the real people have
to walk through to get to it.”</p>
<p>Accordingly they entered the Waldorf and the commodore
hustled them up and down and around, without,
however, their encountering a single “real”
person. There were only people present—loads of them,
not from somewhere but from everywhere. They did
the circuit several times, still without catching sight
of a real person.</p>
<p>“Whew! This <em>is</em> a lonesome place!” breathed the
commodore at last.</p>
<p>“Let’s depart!” disgustedly from Clarence. “Apologize
for steering you into these barren wastes!”</p>
<p>“What’s your hurry?” said Bob, with a little more
bravado. Then suddenly he forgot about those other
three. His entranced gaze became focused on one.
He saw only her.</p>
<p>“Ha!” The commodore’s quick glance, following
Bob’s, caught sight, too, of that wonderful face in the
distance—the stunning, glowing young figure—that
regal dream of just-budded girlhood—that superb
vision in a lovely afternoon gown! She was followed
by one or two others. One could only imagine her
leading. There would, of course, always be several
at her either side and quite a number dangling behind.
Her lips were like the red rosebuds that swung
negligently from her hand as she floated through the
crowd. Her eyes suggested veiled dreams amid the
confusion and hubbub of a topsyturvy world. She
was like something rhythmical precipitated amid
chaos. A far-away impression of a smile played
around the corners of her proud lips.</p>
<p>The commodore precipitated himself in her direction.
Bob put out a hand as if to grasp him by the
coat tails, but the other was already beyond reach and
Bob’s hand fell to his side. He stood passive. That
was his part. Only he wasn’t passive inwardly. His
heart was beating wildly. He could imagine himself
with her and them—those others in her train—and
the conversation that would ensue, for he had no
doubt of the commodore’s intentions. Dan was an
adept at rounding up people. Bob could see himself
at a table participating in the conversation—prepared
conversation, some of it! He could imagine the commodore
leading little rivulets of talk into certain channels
for his benefit. Dan would see to it that they
would ask him (Bob) questions, embarrassing ones.
That “advice” dad had given him weighed on Bob
like a nightmare. Suppose—ghastly thought!—truth
compelled him ever to speak of that? And to her!
A shiver ran down Bob’s backbone. Nearer she
drew—nearer—while Bob gazed as if fascinated, full of
rapturous, paradoxical dread. Now the commodore
was almost upon her when—</p>
<p>Ah, what was that? An open elevator?—people
going in?—She, too,—those with her—Yes—click!
a closed door! The radiant vision had vanished, was
going upward; Bob breathed again. Think of being
even paradoxically glad at witnessing <em>her</em> disappear!
Bob ceased now to think; stood as in a trance.</p>
<p>“Why <em>do</em> people go to concerts?” said the commodore
in aggrieved tones. “Some queen, that!”</p>
<p>“And got the rocks—or stocks!” from Dickie.
“Owns about three of those railroads that are going
a-begging nowadays.”</p>
<p>“Wake up, Bobbie!” some one now addressed that
abstracted individual.</p>
<p>Bob shook himself.</p>
<p>“Old friend of yours, Miss Gwendoline Gerald, I
believe?” said the commodore significantly.</p>
<p>“Yes; I’ve known Miss Gerald for some time,” said
Bob coldly.</p>
<p>“‘Known for some time’—” mimicked the commodore.
“Phlegmatic dog! Well, what shall we do
now?”</p>
<p>“Hang around until the concert’s over?” suggested
Dickie.</p>
<p>“Hang around nothing!” said the commodore. “It’s
one of those classical high-jinks.” Disgustedly. “Lasts
so late the sufferers haven’t time for anything after
it’s over. Just enough energy left to stagger to their
cars and fall over in a comatose condition.”</p>
<p>“Suppose we <em>could</em> go to the bar?”</p>
<p>“Naughty! Naughty!” A sprightly voice interrupted.</p>
<p>The commodore wheeled. “Mrs. Ralston!” he exclaimed
gladly.</p>
<p>It was the gorgeous lady of the gorgeous car.</p>
<p>“Just finished my shopping and thought I’d have a
look in here,” she said vivaciously.</p>
<p>“Concert, I suppose?” from the commodore, jubilantly.</p>
<p>“Yes. Dubussy. Don’t you adore Dubussy?” with
schoolgirlish enthusiasm. Though almost sixty, she
had the manners of a “just-come-out.”</p>
<p>“Nothing like it,” lied the commodore.</p>
<p>“Ah, then you, too, are a modern?” gushed the lady.</p>
<p>“I’m so advanced,” said the commodore, “I can’t
keep up with myself.”</p>
<p>They laughed. “Ah, silly man!” said the lady’s
eyes. Bob gazed at her and the commodore enviously.
Oh, to be able once more to prevaricate like that! The
commodore had never heard Dubussy in his life. Ragtime
and merry hornpipes were his limits. And Mrs.
Ralston was going to the concert, it is true, but to hear
the music? Ah, no! Her box was a fashionable rendezvous,
and from it she could study modernity in
hats. Therein, at least, she was a modern of the
moderns. She was so advanced, the styles had fairly
to trot, or turkey-trot, to keep up with her.</p>
<p>“Well,” she said, with that approving glance women
usually bestowed upon Bob, “I suppose I mustn’t detain
you busy people after that remark I overheard.”</p>
<p>“Oh, don’t hurry,” said the commodore hastily.
“Between old friends— But I say— By jove, you
<em>are</em> looking well. Never saw you looking so young
and charming. Never!” It was rather crudely done,
but the commodore could say things more bluntly than
other people and “get away with them.” He was
rather a privileged character. Bob began to breathe
hard, having a foretaste of what was to follow. And
Mrs. “Willie” Ralston was Miss Gwendoline Gerald’s
aunt! No doubt that young lady was up in her aunt’s
box at this moment.</p>
<p>“Never!” repeated the commodore. “Eh, Bob?
Doesn’t look a day over thirty,” with a jovial, freehearted
sailor laugh. “Does she now?”</p>
<p>It had come. That first test! And the question had
to be answered. The lady was looking at Bob. They
were all waiting. A fraction of a second, or so, which
seemed like a geological epoch, Bob hesitated. He
had to reply and yet being a gentleman, how could he?
No matter what it cost him, he would simply have
to “lie like a gentleman.” He—</p>
<p>Suddenly an idea shot through his befuddled brain.
Maybe Mrs. Ralston wouldn’t know what he said, if
he—? She had been numerous times to France, of
course, but she was not mentally a heavy-weight.
Languages might not be her forte. Presumably she
had all she could do to chatter in English. Bob didn’t
know much French himself. He would take a chance
on her, however. He made a bow which was Chesterfieldian
and incidentally made answer, rattling it off
with the swiftness of a boulevardier.</p>
<p>“<em>Il me faut dire que, vraiment, Madame Ralston
parait aussi agee qu’elle l’est!</em>” (“I am obliged to
say that Mrs. Ralston appears as old as she is!”)</p>
<p>Then he straightened as if he had just delivered a
stunning compliment.</p>
<p>“<em>Merci!</em>” The lady smiled. She also beamed.
“How well you speak French, Mr. Bennett!”</p>
<p>The commodore nearly exploded. <em>He</em> understood
French.</p>
<p>Bob expanded, beginning to breathe freely once
more. “Language of courtiers and diplomats!” he
mumbled.</p>
<p>Mrs. Ralston shook an admonishing finger at him.
“Flatterer!” she said, and departed.</p>
<p>Whereupon the commodore leaned weakly against
Dickie while Clarence sank into a chair. First round
for Bob!</p>
<hr class='tb'/>
<p>The commodore was the first to recover. His voice
was reproachful. “Was <em>that</em> quite fair?—that
parleyvoo business? I don’t know about it’s being
allowed.”</p>
<p>“Why not?” calmly from Bob. “Is truth confined
to one tongue?”</p>
<p>“But what about that ‘even tenor of your way’?”
fenced the commodore. “You don’t, as a usual thing,
go around parleyvooing—”</p>
<p>“What about the even tenor of your own ways?”
retorted Bob.</p>
<p>“Nothing said about <em>that</em> when we—”</p>
<p>“No, but—how can <em>I</em> go the even tenor, if
<em>you</em> don’t go yours?”</p>
<p>“Hum?” said the commodore.</p>
<p>“Don’t you see it’s not the even tenor?” persisted
Bob. “But it’s your fault if it isn’t.”</p>
<p>“Some logic in that,” observed Clarence.</p>
<p>“Maybe, we <em>have</em> been a bit too previous,” conceded
the commodore.</p>
<p>“That isn’t precisely the adjective I would use,”
returned Bob. He found himself thinking more
clearly now. They had all, perhaps, been stepping
rather lightly when they had left the club. He should
have thought of this before. But Bob’s brain moved
rather slowly sometimes and the others had been too
bent on having a good time to consider all the ethics
of the case. They showed themselves fair-minded
enough now, however.</p>
<p>“Bob’s right,” said the commodore sorrowfully.
“Suppose we’ve got to eliminate ourselves from his
agreeable company for the next three weeks, unless we
just naturally happen to meet. We’ll miss a lot of
fun, but I guess it’s just got to be. What about that
parleyvooing business though, Bob?”</p>
<p>“That’s got to be eliminated, too!” from Dickie.
“Why, he might tell the truth in Chinese.”</p>
<p>“All right, fellows,” said Bob shortly. “You quit
tagging and I’ll talk United States.”</p>
<p>“Good. I’m off,” said the commodore. And he
went. The others followed. Bob was left alone. He
found the solitude blessed and began to have hopes
once more. Why, he might even be permitted to
enjoy a real lonely three weeks, now that he had got
rid of that trio. He drew out a cigar and began to tell
himself he <em>was</em> enjoying himself when—</p>
<p>“Mr. Robert Bennett!” The voice of a page smote
the air. It broke into his reflections like a shock.</p>
<p>“Mr. Bennett!” again bawled the voice.</p>
<p>For the moment Bob was tempted to let him slip
by, but conscience wouldn’t let him. He lifted a
finger.</p>
<p>“Message for Mr. Bennett,” said the urchin.</p>
<p>Bob took it. He experienced forebodings as he saw
the dainty card and inscription. He read it. Then
he groaned. Would Mr. Robert Bennett join Mrs.
Ralston’s house-party at Tonkton? There were a few
more words in that impulsive lady’s characteristic,
vivacious style. And then there were two words in
another handwriting that he knew. “Will you?”
That “Will you?” wasn’t signed. Bob stared at it.
Would he? He had to. He was in honor bound,
because ordinarily he would have accepted with alacrity.
But a house-party for him, under present circumstances!
He would be a merry guest. Ye gods
and little fishes! And then some! He gave a hollow
laugh, while the urchin gazed at him sympathetically.
Evidently the gentleman had received bad news.</p>
<h1 id='t842'>CHAPTER III—AN INAUSPICIOUS BEGINNING</h1>
<p>Mrs. Ralston’s house-parties were usually
satisfactory affairs. She was fond of people,
especially young people, and more especially of young
men of the Apollo variety, though in a strictly proper,
platonic and critical sense. Indeed, her taste in the
abstract, for animated Praxiteles had, for well-nigh
two-score of years, been unimpeachable. At the big
gatherings in her noble country mansion, there was
always a liberal sprinkling of decorative and animated
objects of art of this description. She liked to ornament
her porches or her gardens with husky and handsome
young college athletes. She had an intuitive
artistic taste for stunning living-statuary, “dressed
up,” of course. Bob came distinctly in that category.
So behold him then, one fine morning, on the little
sawed-off train that whisked common people—and
sometimes a few notables when their cars were otherwise
engaged—countryward. Bob had a big grip by
his side, his golf sticks were in a rack and he had a
newspaper in his hand. The sunshine came in on
him but his mood was not sunny. An interview with
dad just before leaving hadn’t improved his spirits.
He had found dad at the breakfast table examining a
book of artificial flies, on one hand, and a big reel on
the other.</p>
<p>“Which shall it be, my son?” dad had greeted him
cordially. “Trout or tarpon?”</p>
<p>“I guess that’s for you to decide,” Robert had answered
grumpily. Dad, in his new role, was beginning
to get on Bob’s nerves. Dad didn’t seem to be at all
concerned about his future. He shifted that weighty
and momentous subject just as lightly! He acted as
if he hadn’t a care in the world.</p>
<p>“Wish I <em>could</em> make up my mind,” he said, like a
boy in some doubt how he can best put in his time
when he plays hooky. “Minnows or whales? I’ll toss
up.” He did. “Whales win. By the way, how’s the
hustling coming on?”</p>
<p>“Don’t know.”</p>
<p>“Well, don’t put it off too long.” Cheerfully. “I
guess I can worry along for about three weeks.”</p>
<p>“Three weeks!” said Bob gloomily. Oh, that familiar
sound!</p>
<p>“You wouldn’t have me stint myself, would you,
my son?” Half reproachfully. “You wouldn’t have
dad deny himself anything?”</p>
<p>“No,” answered the other truthfully enough. As
a matter of fact things couldn’t be much worse, so
he didn’t much care. Fortunately, dad didn’t ask any
questions or show any curiosity about that “hustling”
business. He seemed to take it for granted Bob would
arise to the occasion and be as indulgent a son as he
had been an indulgent dad—for he had never denied
the boy anything. Bob softened when he thought of
that. But confound dad’s childlike faith in him, at
this period of emergency. It made Bob nervous. He
had no faith in himself that way. Dad <em>did</em> lift his
eyebrows just a little when Bob brought down his
big grip.</p>
<p>“Week-end?” he hazarded.</p>
<p>“Whole week,” replied Bob in a melancholy tone.</p>
<p>“Whither?”</p>
<p>“Tonkton.”</p>
<p>Dad beamed. “Mrs. Ralston?”</p>
<p>“Yes.”</p>
<p>“Aunt of Miss Gwendoline Gerald, I believe?” With
a quick penetrating glance at Bob.</p>
<p>“Yes.”</p>
<p>“Sensible boy,” observed dad, still studying him.</p>
<p>“Oh, I’m not going for the reason you think,” said
Bob quite savagely. He was most unlike himself.</p>
<p>“Of course not.” Dad was conciliatory.</p>
<p>“I’m not. Think what you like.”</p>
<p>“Too much work to think,” yawned dad.</p>
<p>“But you <em>are</em> thinking.” Resentfully.</p>
<p>“Have it your own way.”</p>
<p>Bob squared his shoulders. “You want to know
really why I’m going to Tonkton?”</p>
<p>“Have I ever tried to force your confidences, my
son?”</p>
<p>“I’m going because I’ve got to. I can’t help myself.”</p>
<p>“Of course,” said dad. “Ta! ta! Enjoy yourself.
See you in three weeks.”</p>
<p>“Three—!” But Bob didn’t finish. What was the
use? Dad thought he was going to Tonkton because
Miss Gerald might be there.</p>
<p>As a matter of fact Bob’s one great wish now was
that she wouldn’t be there. He wanted, and yet didn’t
want, to see her. What had he to hope now? Why,
he didn’t have a son, or not enough of them to count.
He was to all practical intents and purposes a pauper.
Dad’s “going broke” had changed his whole life. He
had been reared in the lap of luxury, a pampered son.
He had never dreamed of being otherwise. And considering
himself a favored child of fortune, he had
even dared entertain the delirious hope of winning
her—her, the goddess of his dreams.</p>
<p>But hope now was gone. Regrets were useless. He
could no longer conceive himself in the role of suitor.
Why, there were few girls in the whole land so overburdened
with “rocks”—as Dickie called them! If
only she didn’t have those rocks—or stocks!
“Impecunious Gwendoline!” How well that would go
with “Impecunious Bob!” If only her trustees would
hit the toboggan, the way dad did! But trustees don’t
go tobogganing. They eschew the smooth and slippery.
They speculate in government bonds and things
that fluctuate about a point or so a century. No chance
for quick action there! On the contrary, the trustees
were probably making those millions grow. Bob
heaved a sigh. Then he took something white from
his pocket and gazed at two words, ardently yet dubiously.</p>
<p>That “Will you?” of hers on Mrs. Ralston’s card
exhilarated and at the same time depressed him. It
implied she, herself, did expect to be at her aunt’s
country place. He attached no other especial importance
to the “Will you?” An imperious young person in her
exalted position could command as she pleased. She
could say “Will you?” or “You will” to dozens of
more or less callow youths, or young grown-ups, with
impunity, and none of said dozens would attach any
undue flattering meaning to her words. Miss Gerald
found safety in numbers. She was as yet heart-free.</p>
<p>“Can you—aw!—tell me how far it is to Tonkton?”
a voice behind here interrupted his ruminations.</p>
<p>Bob hastily returned the card to his pocket, and
glancing back, saw a monocle. “Matter of ten miles
or so,” he responded curtly. He didn’t like monocles.</p>
<p>“Aw!” said the man.</p>
<p>Bob picked up his newspaper that he had laid down,
and frowningly began to glance over the head-lines.
The man behind him glanced over them, too.</p>
<p>“Another society robbery, I see,” the latter remarked.
“No function complete without them nowadays,
I understand. Wonderful country, America!
Guests here always expect—aw!—to be robbed, I’ve
been told.”</p>
<p>“Have the paper,” said Bob with cutting accents.</p>
<p>“Thanks awfully.” The man with the monocle took
the paper as a matter of course, seeming totally unaware
of the sarcasm in Bob’s tone. At first, Bob
felt like kicking himself; the rustle of the paper in
those alien hands caused him to shuffle his feet with
mild irritation. Then he forgot all about the paper
and the monocle man. His thoughts began once more
to go over and over the same old ground, until—</p>
<p>“T’nk’n!” The stentorian abbreviation of the conductor
made Bob get up with a start. Grabbing his
grip—hardly any weight at all for his muscular arm—in
one hand, and his implements of the game in the
other, he swung down the aisle and on to the platform.
A good many people got off, for a small town nestled
beneath the high rolling lands of the country estates
of the affluent. There were vehicles of all kinds at
the station, among them a number of cars, and in one
of the latter Bob recognized Mrs. Ralston’s chauffeur.</p>
<p>A moment he hesitated. He supposed he ought to
step forward and get in, for that was what he naturally
would do. But he wanted to think; he didn’t want
to get to the house in a hurry. Still he had to do what
he naturally would do and he started to do it when
some other people Bob didn’t know—prospective
guests, presumably, among them the man with the
monocle—got into the car and fairly filled it. That
let Bob out nicely and naturally. It gave him another
breathing spell. He had got so he was looking forward
to these little breathing spells.</p>
<p>“Hack, sir?” said a voice.</p>
<p>“Not for me,” replied Bob. “But you can tote this
up the hill,” indicating the grip. “Ralston house.”</p>
<p>“Dollar and a half, sir,” said the man. “Same
price if you go along, too.”</p>
<p>“What?” It just occurred to Bob he hadn’t many
dollars left, and of course, tips would be expected up
there, at the big house. It behooved him, therefore,
to be frugal. But to argue about a dollar and a
half!—he, a guest at the several million dollar house! On
the other hand, that dollar looked large to Bob at this
moment. Imagine if he had to earn a dollar and a
half! He couldn’t at the moment tell how he would
do it.</p>
<p>“Hold on.” Bob took the grip away from the man.
“Why, it’s outrageous, such a tariff! Same price,
with or without me, indeed! I tell you—” Suddenly
he stopped. He had an awful realization that he was
acting a part. That forced indignation of his was not
the truth; that aloof kind of an attitude wasn’t the
truth, either.</p>
<p>“To tell you the truth,” said Bob, “I can’t afford it.”</p>
<p>“Can’t afford. Ha! ha!” That was a joke. One
of Mrs. Ralston’s guests, not afford—!</p>
<p>“No,” said Bob. “I’ve only got about fifteen dollars
and a half to my name. I guess you’re worth
more than that yourself, aren’t you?” With sudden
respect in his tone.</p>
<p>“I guess I am,” said the man, grinning.</p>
<p>“Then, logically, I should be carrying your valise,”
retorted Bob.</p>
<p>“Ha! ha! That’s good.” The fellow had been
transporting the overflow of Mrs. Ralston’s guests for
years, but he had never met quite such an eccentric
one as this. He chuckled now as if it were the best
joke. “I’ll tell you what—I’ll take it for nothing, and
leave it to you what you give me!” Maybe, for a
joke, he’d get a fifty—dollars, not cents. These young
millionaire men did perpetrate little funnyisms like
that. Why, one of them had once “beat him down”
a quarter on his fare and then given him ten dollars
for a tip. “Ha! ha!” repeated the fellow, surveying
Bob’s elegant and faultless attire, “I’ll do it for nothing,
and you—”</p>
<p>Bob walked away carrying his grip. Here he was
telling the truth and he wasn’t believed. The man
took him for one of those irresponsible merry fellows.
That was odd. Was it auspicious? Should he derive
encouragement therefrom? Maybe the others would
only say “Ha! ha!” when he told the truth. But
though he tried to feel the fellow’s attitude was a
good omen, he didn’t succeed very well.</p>
<p>No use trying to deceive <em>himself</em>! Might as well
get accustomed to that truth-telling habit even in his
own thoughts! That diabolical trio of friends had
seen plainer than he. <em>They</em> had realized the dazzling
difficulties of the task confronting him. How they
were laughing in their sleeves now at “darn fool Bob!”
Bob, a young Don Quixote, sallying forth to attempt
the impossible! The preposterous part of the whole
business was that his role <em>was</em> preposterous. Why,
he really and truly, in his transformed condition,
ought to be just like every one else. That he was a
unique exception—a figure alone in his glory, or
ingloriously alone—was a fine commentary on this old
world, anyhow.</p>
<p>What an old humbug of a world it was, he thought,
when, passing before the one and only book-store the
little village boasted of, he ran plump into, or almost
into, Miss Gwendoline Gerald.</p>
<p>She, at that moment, had just emerged from the
shop with a supply of popular magazines in her arms.
A gracious expression immediately softened the young
lady’s lovely patrician features and she extended a
hand. As in a dream Bob looked at it, for the fraction
of a second. It was a beautiful, shapely and
capable hand. It was also sunburned. It looked like
the hand of a young woman who would grasp what
she wanted and wave aside peremptorily what she
didn’t want. It was a strong hand, but it was also an
adorable hand. It went with the proud but lovely face.
It supplemented the steady, direct violet eyes. The pink
nails gleamed like sea-shells. Bob set down the grip
and took the hand. His heart was going fast.</p>
<p>“Glad to see you,” said Miss Gwendoline.</p>
<p>Bob remained silent. He was glad and he wasn’t
glad. That is to say, he was deliriously glad and he
knew he ought not to be. He found it difficult to
conceal the effect she had upon him. He dreaded, too,
the outcome of that meeting. So, how should he answer
and yet tell the truth? It was considerable of a
“poser,” he concluded, as he strove to collect his perturbed
thoughts.</p>
<p>“Well, why don’t you say something?” she asked.</p>
<p>“Lovely clay,” observed Bob.</p>
<p>The violet eyes drilled into him slightly. Shades of
Hebe! but she had a fine figure! She looked great
next to Bob. Maybe she knew it. Perhaps that was
why she was just a shade more friendly and gracious
to him than to some of the others. They two appeared
so well together. He certainly did set her off.</p>
<p>“Is that all you have to say?” asked Miss Gwendoline
after a moment.</p>
<p>“Let me put those magazines in the trap for you?”
said Bob, making a desperate recovery and indicating
the smart rig at the curb as he spoke.</p>
<p>“Thanks,” she answered. “Make yourself useful.”
And gave them to him. But there was now a slight
reserve on her part. His manner had slightly puzzled
her. There was a constraint, or hold-offishness about
him that seemed to her rather a new symptom in him.
What did it mean? Had he misinterpreted her “Will
you?” The violet eyes flashed slightly, then she
laughed. How ridiculous!</p>
<p>“There! You did it very well,” she commended
him mockingly.</p>
<p>“Thanks,” said Bob awkwardly, and shifted. It
would be better if she let him go. Those awful things
he might say?—that she might make him say? But
she showed no disposition to permit him to depart at
once. She lingered. People didn’t usually seek to
terminate talks with her. As a rule they just stuck
and stuck around and it was hard to get rid of them.
Did she divine his uneasiness? Bob showed he certainly
wasn’t enjoying himself. The violet eyes grew
more and more puzzled.</p>
<p>“What a brilliant conversationalist you are to-day,
Mr. Bennett!” she remarked with a trace of irony in
her tones.</p>
<p>“Yes; I don’t feel very strong on the talk to-day,”
answered Bob truthfully.</p>
<p>Miss Gwendoline pondered a moment on this. She
had seen young men embarrassed before—especially
when she was alone with them. Sometimes her decidedly
pronounced beauty had a disquieting effect
on certain sensitive young souls. Bob’s manner
recalled the manner of one or two of those others just
before they indulged, or tried to indulge, in unusual
sentiments, or too close personalities. Miss Gerald’s
long sweeping lashes lowered ominously. Then they
slowly lifted. She didn’t feel to-day any inordinate
endeavor or desire on Bob’s part to break down the
nice barriers of convention and to establish that more
intimate and magnetic atmosphere of a new relationship.
Well, that was the way it should be. It must
be he was only stupid at the moment. That’s why he
acted strange and unlike himself.</p>
<p>Perhaps he had been up late the night before. Maybe
he had a headache. His handsome face was certainly
very sober. There was a silent appeal to her in that
blond head, a little over half-a-head above hers. Miss
Gwendoline’s red lips softened. What a great, big,
nice-looking boy he was, after all! She let the lights
of her eyes play on him more kindly. She had always
thought Bob a good sort. He was an excellent partner
in tennis and when it came to horses—they had certainly
had some great spurts together. She had tried
to follow Bob but it had sometimes been hard. His
“jumps” were famous. What he couldn’t put a horse
over, no one else could. For the sake of these and a
few kindred recollections, she softened.</p>
<p>“I suppose men sometimes do feel that way the next
day,” she observed with tentative sympathy. One just
had to forgive Bob. She knew a lot of cleverer men
who weren’t half so interesting on certain occasions.
Intellectual conversation isn’t everything. Even that
soul-to-soul talk of the higher faddists sometimes
palled. “I suppose that’s why you’re walking.”</p>
<p>“Why?” he repeated, puzzled.</p>
<p>“To dissipate that ‘tired feeling,’ I believe you call
it?”</p>
<p>“But I’m not tired,” said Bob.</p>
<p>“Headachey, then?”</p>
<p>“No.” He wasn’t quite following the subtleties of
her remarks.</p>
<p>“Then why <em>are</em> you walking?” she persisted. “And
with that?” Touching his grip with the tip of her toe.</p>
<p>“Save hack fare,” answered Bob.</p>
<p>She smiled.</p>
<p>“Man wanted a dollar and a half,” he went on.</p>
<p>“And you objected?” Lightly.</p>
<p>“I did.”</p>
<p>Again she smiled. Bob saw she, too, thought it was
a joke. And he remembered how she knew of one or
two occasions when he had just thrown money to the
winds—shoved it out of the window, as it were—orchids,
by the dozens, tips, two or three times too large,
etc. Bob, with those reckless eyes, object to a dollar
and a half—or a hundred and fifty, for that matter?
Not he! If ever there had been a spendthrift!—</p>
<p>“Well, I’ll lend a hand to a poor, poverty-stricken
wretch,” said Miss Gerald, indulgently entering into
the humor of the situation.</p>
<p>“What do you mean?” With new misgivings.</p>
<p>“Put them”—indicating the grip and the sticks—“in
the trap,” she commanded.</p>
<p>Bob did. He couldn’t do anything else. And then
he assisted her in.</p>
<p>“Thanks for timely help!” he said more blithely,
as he saw her slip on her gloves and begin to gather
up the reins with those firm capable fingers. “And
now—?” He started as if to go.</p>
<p>“Oh, you can get in, too.” Why shouldn’t he?
There was room for two. She spoke in a matter-of-fact
manner.</p>
<p>“I—?” Bob hesitated. A long, long drive—unbounded
opportunity for chats, confidences!—and all
at the beginning of his sojourn here? Dad’s words—that
horrid advice—burned on his brain like fire. He
tried to think of some excuse for not getting in. He
might say he had to stop at a drug store, or call up a
man in New York on business by telephone, or— But
no! he couldn’t say any of those things. He was denied
the blissful privilege of other men.</p>
<p>“Well, why don’t you get in?” Miss Gerald spoke
more sharply. “Don’t you want to?”</p>
<p>The words came like a thunder-clap, though Miss
Gwendoline’s voice was honey sweet. Bob raised a
tragic head. That monster, Truth!</p>
<p>“No,” he said.</p>
<p>An instant Miss Gwendoline looked at him, the
violet eyes incredulous, amused. Then a slight line appeared
on her beautiful forehead and her red lips
parted a little as if she were going to say something,
but didn’t. Instead, they closed tight, the way
rosebuds shut when the night is unusually frosty. Her
eyes became hard like diamonds.</p>
<p>“How charmingly frank!” she said. Then she drew
up the reins and trailed the tip of the whip caressingly
along the back of her spirited cob. It sprang forward.
“Look out for the sun, Mr. Bennett,” she called back
as they dashed away. “It’s rather hot to-day.”</p>
<p>Bob stood and stared after her. What did she mean
about the sun? Did she think he had a touch of sunstroke,
or brain-fever? It was an inauspicious beginning,
indeed. If he had only known what next was
coming!</p>
<h1 id='t1344'>CHAPTER IV—A CHAT ON THE LINKS</h1>
<p>At the top of the hill, instead of following the winding
road, Bob started leisurely across the rolling
green toward the big house whose roof could be discerned
in the distance above the trees. The day was
charming, but he was distinctly out of tune. There
was a frown on his brow. Fate had gone too far. He
half-clenched his fists, for he was in a fighting mood
and wanted to retaliate—but how? At the edge of
some bushes he came upon a lady—no less a personage
than the better-half of the commodore, himself.</p>
<p>She was fair, fat and forty, or a little more. She
was fooling with a white ball, or rather it was fooling
with her, for she didn’t seem to like the place where it
lay. She surveyed it from this side and then from
that. To the casual observer it looked just the same
from whichever point you viewed it. Once or twice
the lady, evidently no expert, raised her arm and then
lowered it. But apparently, at last, she made up her
mind. She was just about to hit the little ball, though
whether to top or slice it will never be known, when
Bob stepped up from behind the bushes.</p>
<p>“Oh, Mr. Bennett!” He had obviously startled her.</p>
<p>“The same,” said Bob gloomily.</p>
<p>“That’s too bad of you,” she chided him, stepping
back.</p>
<p>“What?”</p>
<p>“Why, I’d just got it all figured out in my mind how
to do it.”</p>
<p>“Sorry,” said Bob. “I didn’t know you were behind
the bushes or I wouldn’t have come out on you like
that. But maybe you’ll do even better than you were
going to. Hope so! Go ahead with your drive. Don’t
mind me.” His tone was depressed, if not sepulchral.</p>
<p>But the lady, being at that sociable age, showed now
a perverse disposition not to “go ahead.”</p>
<p>“Just get here?” she asked.</p>
<p>“Yes. Anything doing?”</p>
<p>“Not much. It’s been, in fact, rather slow. Mrs.
Ralston says so herself. So I am at liberty to make
the same remark. Of course we’ve done the usual
things, but somehow there seems to be something lacking,”
rattled on the lady. “Maybe we need a few more
convivial souls to stir things up. Perhaps we’re waiting
for some one, real good and lively, to appear upon
the scene. Does the description chance to fit you, Mr.
Bennett?” Archly.</p>
<p>“I think not,” said gloomy Bob.</p>
<p>“Well, that isn’t what Mrs. Ralston says about you,
anyway,” observed the commodore’s spouse.</p>
<p>“What does she say?”</p>
<p>“‘When Bob Bennett’s around, things begin to
hum.’ So you see you have a reputation to live up to.”</p>
<p>“I dare say. No doubt I’ll live up to it, all right.”</p>
<p>“It’s really up to you to stir things up.”</p>
<p>“I’ve begun.” Ominously.</p>
<p>“Have you? How lovely!”</p>
<p>This didn’t require an answer, for it wasn’t really
a question. A white ball went by them, a very pretty
snoop, and pretty soon another lady and a caddy
loomed on their range of vision. The lady was thin
and spirituelle and she walked by with a stride. You
would have said she had taken lessons of a man. She
looked neither to the right nor the left. At the moment,
she, at any rate, was not sociably inclined. That
walk meant business. She wasn’t one of those fussy
beginners like the lady Bob was talking with.</p>
<p>“Isn’t that Mrs. Clarence Van Duzen?” asked Bob.</p>
<p>“Yes. She, too, poor dear, has had to desert hubby.
Exactions of business! Clarence simply couldn’t get
away. You see he’s director of so many things. And
poor, dear old Dan! So busy! Every day at the office!
So pressed with business.”</p>
<p>“Quite so,” said Bob absently. “I mean—” He
stopped. He knew Dan wasn’t pressed for business and
Bob couldn’t utter even the suspicion of an untruth
now. “Didn’t exactly mean that!” he mumbled.</p>
<p>The lady regarded him quickly. His manner was
just in the least strange. But in a moment she thought
no more about it.</p>
<p>“You didn’t happen to see Dan?” she asked.</p>
<p>“Yes.”</p>
<p>“At his office, I suppose?” Dan had written he
hadn’t even had time for his club; that it had been just
work—work all the time.</p>
<p>“No.”</p>
<p>“Where, then?”</p>
<p>“At the club and some other places.” Reluctantly.</p>
<p>“Other places?” Lightly. Of course she hadn’t
really believed quite all Dan had written about that
office confinement. “How dreadfully ambiguous!”
With a laugh. “What other places?”</p>
<p>Bob began to get uneasy. “Well, we went to a
cabaret or two.” No especial harm about that answer.</p>
<p>“Of course,” said the lady. “Why not?”</p>
<p>Bob felt relieved. He didn’t want to make trouble.
He was too miserable himself. He trusted that would
end the talk and now regarded the neglected ball suggestively.</p>
<p>“And then you went to still some other places?”
went on the lady in that same light, unoffended tone.</p>
<p>“Ye-es,” Bob had to admit.</p>
<p>“One of those roof gardens, perhaps, where they
have entertainments?” she suggested brightly.</p>
<p>Bob acknowledged they had gone to a roof garden.
And again, and more suggestively, he eyed the little
white ball. But Mrs. Dan seemed to have forgotten
all about it.</p>
<p>“Roof gardens,” she said. “I adore roof gardens.
They <em>are</em> such a boon to the people. I told dear Dan
to be sure not to miss them. So nice to think of him
enjoying himself instead of moping away in a stuffy
old office.”</p>
<p>Bob gazed at her suspiciously. But she had such
an open face! One of those faces one can’t help trusting.
Mrs. Dan was just the homely, plain old-fashioned
type. At least, so she seemed. Anyhow, it didn’t
much matter so far as Bob was concerned. He had
to tell the truth. He hadn’t sought this conversation.
It was forced on him. He was only going the “even
tenor of his way.” He was, however, rather pleased
that Mrs. Dan did seem in some respects different
from others of her sex. Bob didn’t, of course, really
know much about the sex.</p>
<p>“So you went to the roof garden—just you and
Dan,” purred Mrs. Dan.</p>
<p>Bob didn’t answer. He hoped she hadn’t really put
that as a question.</p>
<p>“Or <em>were</em> you and Dan alone?” She made it a
question now.</p>
<p>“No-a.”</p>
<p>“Who else were along?”</p>
<p>“Dickie—”</p>
<p>“And—?”</p>
<p>“Clarence.”</p>
<p>She gazed toward Mrs. Clarence, while a shade of
anxiety appeared on Bob’s face. In the distance Mrs.
Clarence had paused to contemplate the result of an unusually
satisfactory display of skill. Mrs. Dan next
glanced sidewise at her caddy, but that young man
seemed to have relapsed into a condition of innocuous
vacancy. He looked capable of falling asleep standing.
Certainly he wasn’t trying to overhear.</p>
<p>“Just you four men!” Mrs. Dan resumed her purring.
“Or were you all alone? No ladies along?”</p>
<p>While expecting, of course, the negative direct, she
was studying Bob and gleaning what she could, surreptitiously, or by inference. He had an eloquent face
which might tell her something his lips refused to reveal.
His answer almost took her breath away.</p>
<p>“Ye-es.”</p>
<p>He was sorry, but he had to say it. No way out of
it! Mrs. Dan’s jaw fell. What she might have said
can only be conjectured, for at this moment, luckily
for Bob, there came an interruption.</p>
<p>“Tête-à-têting, instead of teeing!” broke in a jocular
voice. The speaker wore ecclesiastical garments;
his imposing calves were encased in episcopal gaiters.
Mrs. Ralston always liked to dignify her house-parties
with a religious touch, and this particular bishop
was very popular with her. Bob inwardly blessed the
good man for his opportune appearance. He was a
ponderous wag.</p>
<p>“Forgive interruption,” he went on, just as if Mrs.
Dan who was non-amatory had been engaged in a
furious flirtation. “I’ll be hurrying on.”</p>
<p>“Do,” said Mrs. Dan, matching his tone, and concealing
any inward exasperation that she might have
felt.</p>
<p>“It’s I who will be hurrying on,” interposed Bob
quickly. “You see, I’m expected to arrive at the
house,” he laughed.</p>
<p>“Looked as if you were having an interesting conversation,”
persisted the bishop waggishly.</p>
<p>“And so we were,” assented Mrs. Dan. She could
have stamped with vexation, but instead, she forced a
smile. The dear tiresome bishop had to be borne.</p>
<p>“Confess you find me de trop?” he went on, shaking
a finger at Bob.</p>
<p>“On the contrary,” said Bob.</p>
<p>“Has to say that,” laughed the good man. He did
love to poke fun (or what he conceived “fun”) at
“fair, fat and forty.” “I suppose you were positively
dee-lighted to be interrupted?”</p>
<p>“I was,” returned Bob truthfully.</p>
<p>“Ha! ha!” laughed the bishop.</p>
<p>Bob looked at him. The bishop thought he was
joking, just as the hackman had. Of course, no one
could say such a thing as that seriously and in the presence
of the lady herself. People always didn’t believe
truth when they heard it. They thought telling the
truth a form of crude humor, and a spark of hope-a
very small one—shot through Bob’s brain. Perhaps
they would continue to look upon him in the light of
a joker. He would be the little joker in the pack of
cards and he might yet pull off that “three weeks”
without pulling down the house. Only—would Miss
Gerald look upon him as a joker? Intuition promptly
told him she would not. His thoughts reverted to that
last meeting. Think of having told her he didn’t
want—His offense grew more awful unto himself
every moment. He ceased to remember Mrs. Dan,
and saying something, he hardly knew what, Bob
walked on.</p>
<p>Miss Gwendoline Gerald was on the big veranda
when he reached the house. He would have thanked
her humbly and with immense contrition for having
transferred his bag and clubs hither, but as he went by,
that gracious, stately young lady seemed not to see
him. It was as if he had suddenly become invisible.
Her face didn’t even change; the proud contour expressed
neither contempt nor disdain; the perfectly
formed lips didn’t take a more pronounced curve or
grow hard.</p>
<p>Bob felt himself shrink. He was like that man in
the story book who becomes invisible at times. The
fiction man, however, attained this convenient consummation
through his own volition. Bob didn’t.
She was the magician and he wasn’t even a joker.</p>
<p>He managed to reach the front door without stumbling.
A wild desire to attract her attention by asking
her if his luggage <em>had</em> arrived safely, he dismissed
quickly. It wouldn’t do at all. It might imply a fear
she had dumped it out, en route. And if she hadn’t,
such an inquiry would only emphasize the fact that she
had acted as expressman—or woman—and for him!</p>
<p>He would go to his room at once, he told the footman.
He didn’t mind a few moments’ solitude. If so
much could happen before his house-party had begun—before
he even got into the house—what might he not
expect later? In one of the upper halls he encountered
the man with the monocle.</p>
<p>“I say!” said this person. “What a jolly coincidence!”</p>
<p>“Think so?” said Bob. He didn’t find anything
“jolly” about it. On another occasion, he might have
noticed that the eye behind the “window-pane” was
rather twinkling, but his perceptions were not particularly
keen at the present time.</p>
<p>In the room to which he had been assigned, Bob
cast off a few garments. Then he stopped with his shirt
partly off. He wondered how Miss Gerald would look
the next time he saw her? Like a frozen Hebe,
perhaps! Bob removed the shirt and cast it viciously
somewhere. Then he selected another shirt—the first
that came along, for why should he exercise care to
select? It matters little what an invisible man wears.
<em>She</em> wouldn’t see the extra stripe or the bigger dot.
Stripes couldn’t rescue him from insubstantiability.
Colors, too, would make no difference. Pea-green,
yellow, or lavender—it was all one. Any old shirt
would do. And any old tie!</p>
<p>When he had finished dressing, he didn’t find any
further excuse for remaining in his room. He couldn’t
consult his desires as to that. He wasn’t asked there
to be a hermit. He couldn’t imitate Timon of Athens,
Diogenes or any other of those wise old fellows who
did the glorious solitude act. Diogenes told the truth,
mostly, but he could live in a tub. He didn’t have to
participate in house-parties. Whoever invented house-parties,
anyhow? They were such uncomfortable
“social functions” they must have been invented by the
English. Why do people want to get together? Bob
could sympathize with Diogenes. Also, he could envy
Timon his howling wilderness! But personally he
couldn’t even be a Robinson Crusoe. Would there
were no other company than clawless crabs and a goat
and a parrot! He would not be afraid to tell <em>them</em>
the truth.</p>
<p>He had to go down and he did. Nemesis lurked for
him below. Had Bob realized what was going to happen
he would have skipped back to his room. But, as
it was, he assumed a bold front. He even said to himself,
“Cheer up; the worst is yet to come.” It was.</p>
<h1 id='t1691'>CHAPTER V—TRIVIALITIES</h1>
<p>Luncheon came and went, but nothing actually
tragic happened at it. Bob didn’t make more than
a dozen remarks that failed to add to his popularity.
He tried to be agreeable, because that was his nature.
That “even-tenor-of-his-way” condition made it
incumbent on him—yes, made it his sacred duty to be
bright and amiable. So it was “Hence, loathed Melancholy!”
and a brave endeavor to be as jocund as the
poet’s lines! Only those little unfortunate
moments—airy preludes to larger misfortunes—had to occur,
and just when he would flatter himself he was not doing
so badly.</p>
<p>For example, when Mrs. Augustus Ossenreich Vanderpool
said: “Don’t you adore dogs, Mr. Bennett?”</p>
<p>“No. I like them.” It became necessary to qualify
that. “That is—not the little kind.”</p>
<p>The lady stiffened. Her beribboned and perfumed
five-thousand-dollar toy-dogs were the idolized darlings
of her heart. The children might be relegated
to the nursery but the canines had the run of the boudoir.
They rode with her when she went out in state
while the French <em>bonne</em> took the children for
an airing. “And why are the ‘little kind’ excluded
from the realm
of your approbation?” observed Mrs. Vanderpool
coldly.</p>
<p>It was quite a contract to answer that. Bob wanted
to be truthful; not to say too much or too little; only
just as much as he was in honor bound to say. “I
think people make too much fuss over them,” he answered
at last. That reply seemed quite adequate and
he trusted the lady would change the subject. But
people had a way of not doing what he wanted them to,
lately.</p>
<p>“What do you call ‘too much fuss’?” pursued the
lady persistently.</p>
<p>Bob explained as best he could. It was rather a
thankless task and he floundered a good deal as he
went about it. He wasn’t going to be a bit more disagreeable
than he could help, only he couldn’t help
being as disagreeable as he had to be. The fact that
Miss Gwendoline Gerald’s starry eyes were on him
with cold curiosity did not improve the lucidity of his
explanation. In the midst of it, she to whom he was
talking, seemed somehow to detach herself from him,
gradually, not pointedly, for he hardly knew just when
or how she got away. She seemed just to float off and
to attach herself somewhere else—to the bishop or to a
certain judge Mrs. Ralston always asked to her house-parties
that they might have a judicial as well as an
ecclesiastical touch—and Bob’s explanation died on the
thin air. He let it die. He didn’t have to speak truth
to vacancy.</p>
<p>Then he tangoed, but not with Miss Gwendoline
Gerald. He positively dared not approach that young
lady. He didn’t tango because he wanted to, but because
some one set a big music-box going and he knew
he was expected to tango. He did it beautifully and
the young lady was charmed. She was a little dark
thing, of the clinging variety, and Dickie had gone
with her some. Her father owned properties that
would go well with Dickie’s—there’d been some talk
of consolidation, but it had never come off. Papa was
inclined to be stand-offish. Then Dickie began to get
attentive to the little dark thing, though nothing had
yet come of that either. Bob didn’t own any properties
but the little dark thing didn’t mind that. At tangoing,
he was a dream. Properties can’t tango.</p>
<p>“You do it so well,” said the little dark thing
breathlessly.</p>
<p>“Do I?” murmured Bob, thinking of a stately young
goddess, now tangoing with another fellow.</p>
<p>“Don’t you adore it?” went on the little dark thing,
nestling as close as was conventional and proper.</p>
<p>“I might,” observed Bob. That was almost as bad
as the dog question. He trusted the matter would
end there.</p>
<p>She giggled happily. “Maybe you disapprove of
modern dancing, Mr. Bennett?”</p>
<p>“That depends,” said Bob gloomily. He meant it
depended upon who was “doing the modern” with the
object of your fondest affections. If you yourself
were engaged in the arduous pastime with said object,
you would, naturally harbor no particular objections
against said modern tendencies, but if you weren’t?—</p>
<p>Bob tangoed more swiftly. His thoughts were so
bitter he wanted to run away from them. The irony
of gliding rhythmically and poetically in seeming joyous
abandon of movement when his heart weighed a
ton! If that heaviness of heart were communicated to
his legs, they would in reality be as heavy as those of
a deep-sea diver, weighted down for a ten-fathom
plunge.</p>
<p>And in thus trying to run away from his thoughts
Bob whirled the little dark thing quite madly. He
couldn’t dance ungracefully if he tried and the little
dark thing had a soul for rhythm. It was as if he were
trying to run away with her. He fairly took away her
breath. She was a panting little dark thing on his
broad breast now, but she didn’t ask him to stop. The
music-box ceased to be musical and that brought them
to a stop. The eyes of the little dark thing—her name
was Dolly—sparkled, and she gazed up at Bob with the
respect one of her tender and impressionable years has
for a masculine whirlwind.</p>
<p>“You quite sweep one off one’s feet, Mr. Bennett,”
she managed to ejaculate.</p>
<p>At that moment Miss Gwendoline passed, a divine
bud glowing on either proud cheek. She caught the
remark and looked at the maker of it. She noted the
sparkle in the eyes. The little dark thing was a wonder
with the men. She seemed to possess the
knack—only second to Miss Gwendoline, in that line—of
converting them into “trailers.” Miss Gwendoline,
though, never tried to attain this result. Men became
her trailers without any effort on her part, while the
little dark thing had to exert herself, but it was
agreeable work. She made Bob a trailer now, temporarily.
Miss Gwendoline turned her head slightly, with a
gleam of surprise to watch him trail. She had noticed
that Bob had danced with irresistible and almost pagan
abandon. That argued enjoyment.</p>
<p>The little dark thing would “come in” ultimately
for hundreds of belching chimneys and glowing furnaces
and noisy factories—quite a snug if cacophonous
legacy!—and Miss Gwendoline had only that day heard
rumors that Bob’s governor had fallen down and hurt
himself on the “street.” She, Miss Gwendoline, had
not attached much importance to those rumors. People
were always having little mishaps in the “street,”
and then bobbing up richer than ever.</p>
<p>But now that rumor recurred to her more vividly in
the light of Bob’s trailing performance and the mad
abandon of his tangoing. Of course, all men are
gamblers, or fortune-hunters, or something equally
reprehensible, at heart! Tendency of a cynical, selfish
and money-grabbing age! Miss Gwendoline was no
moralist but she had lived in a wise set, where people
keep their eyes open and weigh things for just what
they are. Naturally a young man whose governor
has gone on the rocks (though only temporarily, perhaps),
might think that belching chimneys, though
somewhat splotchy on the horizon and unpicturesque
to the eye, might be acceptable, in a
first-aid-to-the-injured sense. But Bob as
a plain, ordinary fortune-hunter?— Somehow
the role did not fit him.</p>
<p>Besides, a fortune-hunter would not bruskly and
unceremoniously have refused <em>her</em> invitation to ride
in the trap. And at the recollection of that affront,
Miss Gwendoline’s violet eyes again gleamed, until for
sparkles they out-matched those of the little dark
thing. However, she held herself too high to be really
resentful. It was impossible she should resent anything
so incomprehensible, she told herself. That
would lend dignity to the offense. Therefore she could
only be mildly amused by it. This was, no doubt, a
properly lofty attitude, but was it a genuine one?
Was she not actually at heart, deeply resentful and
dreadfully offended? Pride being one of her marked
characteristics, she demanded a great deal and would
not accept a little.</p>
<p>The sparkles died from the hard violet eyes. A
more tentative expression replaced that other look as
her glance now passed meditatively over the dark little
thing. The latter had certainly a piquant bizarre
attraction. She looked as if she could be very intense,
though she was of that clinging-vine variety of young
woman. She wore one of those tango gowns which
was odd, outre and a bit daring. It went with her
personality. At the same time her innocent expression
seemed a mute, almost pathetic little appeal to
you <em>not</em> to think it too daring.</p>
<p>As Miss Gerald studied the young lady, albeit without
seeming to do so and holding her own in a sprightly
tango kind of talk, another thought flashed into her
mind. Bob might be genuinely and sentimentally smitten.
Why not? Men frequently fell in love with the
little dark thing, and afterward some of them said she
had a “good deal of temperament.” Bob might be on
a temperament-investigating quest. At any rate, it
was all one to Miss Gerald. Life was a comedy.
<em>N’est-ce-pas?</em> What was it Balzac called it? <em>La
Comedie Humaine.</em></p>
<p>Meanwhile, other eyes than Miss Gerald’s were bent
upon luckless Bob. Mrs. Dan and Mrs. Clarence looked
as if they would like to have a word with him. Mrs.
Dan even maneuvered in his direction at the conclusion
of the dance while Bob watched her with ill-concealed
apprehension. He detected, also, an uncanny
interest in Mrs. Clarence’s eyes as that masterful
lady eyed him and Mrs. Dan from a distance. Mrs.
Dan almost got him when—the saints be praised!—Mrs.
Ralston, herself, tripped blithely up and annexed
him. For the moment he was safe, but only for the
moment.</p>
<p>A reckless desire to end it all surged through Bob’s
inmost being. If only his hostess would say something
demanding an answer that would incur such disapprobation
on her part, he would feel impelled, in the natural
order of events, to hasten his departure. Maybe
then (and he thrilled at the thought), she might even
intimate in her chilliest manner that his <em>immediate</em>
departure would be the logical sequence of some truthful
spasm she, herself, had forced from him? He
couldn’t talk French to Mrs. Ralston now; he was in
honor bound not to. He would have to speak right up
in the King’s English—or Uncle Sam’s American.</p>
<p>Of course, such a consummation—Bob’s being practically
<em>forced</em> to take his departure—was extremely
unpleasant and awful to contemplate, yet worse things
could happen than that—a whole string of them, one
right after another!</p>
<p>However, he had no such luck as to be ordered
forthwith off the premises. He didn’t offend Mrs.
Ralston at all. That lady was very nice to him
(or otherwise, from Bob’s present view-point) and
did most of the talking herself. Perhaps she considered
that compliment (?) Bob had bestowed upon her
at the Waldorf sufficient to excuse him for a while
from further undue efforts at flattery. At any rate,
she didn’t seem to take it amiss that Bob didn’t say a
lot more of equally nice things in that Chesterfieldian
manner and with such a perfect French accent.</p>
<p>But he “got in bad” that afternoon with divers and
sundry other guests of Mrs. Ralston. Mrs. Augustus
O. Vanderpool and Miss Gerald weren’t the only ones
who threw cold glances his way, for the faux pas he
made—that he <em>had</em> to make—were something dreadful.
For example, when some one asked him what he
thought of Miss Schermerhorn’s voice, he had to say
huskily what was in his mind:</p>
<p>“It is rather too strident, isn’t it?” No sugar-coating
the truth! If he had said anything else he would
have been compromising with veracity; he would not
have spoken the thought born in his brain at the question.
Of course, some one repeated what he said to
Miss Schermerhorn, who came from one of the oldest
families, was tall and angular, and cherished fond illusions,
or delusions, that she was an amateur nightingale.
The some one who repeated, had to repeat, because
Miss Schermerhorn was her dearest friend and
confidante. Then Miss Schermerhorn came right up
to Bob and asked him if he had said it and he was
obliged to answer that he had. What she said, or
thought, need not be repeated. She left poor Bob
feeling about as big as a caterpillar.</p>
<p>“How very tactful of Mr. Bennett!” was all Miss
Gerald said, when Miss Dolly related to her the little
incident.</p>
<p>“That’s just what I adore in him!” gushed the temperamental
little thing. “He doesn’t seem to be afraid
of saying anything to anybody. He’s so delightfully
frank!”</p>
<p>“Frank, certainly!” answered Miss Gerald icily.</p>
<p>“Anyhow, he’s a regular tango-king!” murmured
Miss Dolly dreamily.</p>
<p>“I’m so glad <em>you</em> approve of him, dear!” said Miss
Gerald with an enigmatic smile. Perhaps she implied
the temperamental little thing found herself in a class,
all by herself, in this regard.</p>
<p>The latter flew over to Bob. If he was so “frank”
and ingenuous about Miss Schermerhorn, perhaps he
would be equally so with other persons. Miss Dolly
asked him if he didn’t think the bishop’s sermons
“just too dear?” Bob did not. “Why not?” she persisted.
Bob had just been reading <em>The Outside of the
Pot</em>. “Why not?” repeated Miss Dolly.</p>
<p>“Antediluvian!” groaned Bob, then turned a fiery
red. The bishop, standing on the other side of the
doorway, had overheard. Maybe Miss Dolly had
known he stood there for she now giggled and fled.
Bob wanted to sink through the floor, but he couldn’t.</p>
<p>“So, sir, you think my sermons antediluvian?” said
the bishop, with a twinkle of the eye. <em>He</em> never got
mad, he was the best old man that way that ever happened.</p>
<p>“Yes, sir,” replied Bob, by rote.</p>
<p>“Thank you,” said the bishop, and rubbed his nose.
Then he eyed Bob curiously. “Maybe you’re right,”
he said. That made Bob feel awful, but he couldn’t
retract. The truth as he saw it!—He felt as if he
were chained to the wheel of fate—the truth as he
saw it, though the heavens fell!</p>
<p>“Of course, that’s only my poor insignificant opinion,”
he murmured miserably.</p>
<p>“Every man’s opinion is entitled to respect,” said
the bishop.</p>
<p>“Yes, sir,” replied Bob, more miserably still.</p>
<p>The bishop continued to study him. “You interest
me, Mr. Bennett.”</p>
<p>“Do I?” said Bob. “I’m rather interesting to myself
just now.”</p>
<p>“You evidently agree with the author of <em>The Outside
of the Pot</em>?”</p>
<p>“That’s it.” Weakly.</p>
<p>“Well, cheer up,” said the bishop, and walked away.</p>
<p>Later in the day the judge might have been heard to
say to the bishop that “that young Bennett cub is a
good-for-nothing jackanapes”—from which it might
be inferred Bob had somehow managed to rub the
judge’s ermine the wrong way.</p>
<p>“Ha! ha!” laughed the bishop. “Did some one ask
him what he thought of judges?”</p>
<p>But the judge did not laugh. His frown was awful.</p>
<p>“Or was it about the ‘recall’? Or the relation of
judges and corporations?”</p>
<p>The judge looked stern as Jove. “Ass!” he muttered.</p>
<p>“Maybe he’s a progressive,” returned the bishop.
“The world seems to be changing. Ought we to
change with it, I wonder?”</p>
<p>“I don’t,” snapped the judge. “If the world to-day
is producing such fatuous blockheads, give me the
world as it was.”</p>
<p>“The trouble is,” said the bishop, again rubbing his
nose, “can we get it back? Hasn’t it left us behind and
are we ever going to catch up?”</p>
<p>“Fudge!” said the judge. He and the bishop were
such old friends, he could take that liberty.</p>
<p>Another of the sterner sex—one of Mrs. Ralston’s
guests—looked as if he, too, could have said: “Fudge!”
His lips fairly curled when he regarded Bob. He specialized
as a vivisectionist, and he was a great authority.
Now Bob loved the “under-dog” and was naturally
kind and sympathetic. He had been blessed—or
cursed—with a very tender heart for such a compact,
well-put-up, six foot or so compound of hard-headed
masculinity. Miss Dolly—imp of mischief—again
rather forced the talk. It must be wonderful to
cut things up and juggle with hind legs and kidneys
and brains and mix them all up with different animals,
until a poor little cat didn’t know if it had a
dog’s brain or its own? And was it true that sometimes
the dogs me-owed, and when a cat started to purr
did it wag its tail instead? This was all right from
Miss Dolly, but when the conversation expanded and
Bob was appealed to, it was different. “Wouldn’t <em>you</em>
just love to mix up the different ‘parts’?” asked Miss
Dolly, and put a rabbit’s leg on a pussy, just to watch
its expression of surprise when it started to run and
found itself only able to jump, or half-jump? That
got honest Bob—who couldn’t have carved up a poor
dumb beast, to save his life—fairly involved, and before
he had staggered from that conversational morass,
he had offended Authority about two dozen times. Indeed,
Authority openly turned its back on him. Authority
found Bob impossible.</p>
<p>These are fair samples of a few of his experiences.
And all the while he had an uneasy presentiment that
Mrs. Dan and Mrs. Clarence were waiting to get him
and have <em>their</em> innings. Now, Mrs. Dan would bestow
upon him a too sweet smile between games of tennis;
then Mrs. Clarence would drift casually in his direction,
but something would happen that would prevent
a heart-to-heart duologue, and she would as casually
drift away again. These hit-and-miss tactics, however,
gradually got on Bob’s nerves, and in consequence,
he who was usually a star and a cracker jack at the
game, played abominable tennis that afternoon—thus
enhancing his unpopularity with divers partners who
simply couldn’t understand why he had fallen off so.
Indeed, about every one he came in contact with was
profoundly dissatisfied or disgusted with Bob. Miss
Gerald, who usually played with him, now firmly but
unostentatiously, avoided him, and though Bob couldn’t
blame her, of course, still the fact did not tend to
mitigate his melancholy.</p>
<p>How different in the past!—that glorious,
never-to-be-forgotten past! Then he had inwardly reveled and
rejoiced in her lithe movements—for with all her
stateliness and proud carriage, she was like a young panther
for grace. Now as luckless Bob played with some one
else, a tantalizing college ditty floated through his
brain: “I wonder who’s kissing her now?”</p>
<p>Of course, no one was. She wasn’t that kind.
Though some one, some day, would! It was in the
natural order of things bound to occur, and Bob, in
fancy, saw those disdainful red lips, with some one
hovering over, as he swung at a white ball and sent
it—well, not where he should have.</p>
<p>“You are playing very badly, partner,” a reproving
voice reminded him.</p>
<p>Bob muttered something. Confound that frivolous
haunting song! He would dismiss the dire and absurd
possibility. Some one else was with her, though, and
that was sufficiently poignant. There were several of
the fellows tremendously smitten in that quarter. Fine,
husky athletic chaps, too! Some of them quite expert
at wooing, no doubt, for devotees of house-parties
become educated and acquire finesse. They don’t
have to tell the truth all the time, but on the contrary,
are privileged to prevaricate in the most artistic manner.
They can gaze into beautiful eyes and swear
that they have “never before,” and so on. They can
perform prodigies of prevarication and “get away”
with them. Bob played now even worse than before.</p>
<p>The sun got low at last, however, and wearily he
retired to his room, to change his garments for dinner.
Incidentally, he surveyed himself in the mirror with
haunting earnestness of gaze. Had he grown perceptibly
older? He thought he could detect a few lines
of care on his erstwhile unsullied brow, and with a
sigh, he turned away to array himself in the customary
black—or “glad rags”—which seemed now, however,
but the habiliments of woe. Then he descended to
receive a new shock; he found out that Mrs. Ralston
had assigned Mrs. Dan to him, to take in to dinner.
Drearily Bob wondered if it were mere chance that he
had drawn Mrs. Dan for a dinner prize, or if Mrs.
Dan herself had somehow brought about that, to her,
desired consummation. As he gave Mrs. Dan his arm
he saw Mrs. Clarence exchange glances with the commodore’s
good lady. Mrs. Ralston went in with the
monocle man.</p>
<h1 id='t2169'>CHAPTER VI—DINNER</h1>
<p>Mrs. Dan dallied with Bob, displaying all the
artifices of an old campaigner. Of course, she
had no idea how easy it might be for her to learn all
she wanted to. She could not know he was like a barrel
or puncheon of information and that all she had to
do was to pull the plug and let information flow out.
She regarded Bob more in the light of a safety vault;
the bishop’s interruption had put him on his guard and
she would have to get through those massive outer-doors
of his reserve, before she could force the many
smaller doors to various boxes full of startling facts.</p>
<p>It was a fine tableful of people, of which they were
a part. Wealth, beauty, brains and brawn were all
there. An orchestra played somewhere. Being paid
performers you didn’t see them and as distance lends
enchantment to music, on most occasions, the result
was admirable. Delicate orchids everywhere charmed
with their hues without exuding that too obtrusive
perfume of commoner flowers. Mrs. Ralston was an
orchid enthusiast and down on the Amazon she kept
an orchid-hunter who, whenever he found a new variety,
sent her a cable.</p>
<p>So Mrs. Dan started on orchids with Bob. She
hadn’t the slightest interest in orchids, but she displayed
a simulated interest that sounded almost like
real interest. Mrs. Dan hadn’t practised on society,
or had society practise on her, all these years for nothing.
She could get that simulated-interested tone going
without any effort. But Bob’s attention wandered,
and he gazed toward Miss Gerald who occupied a place
quite a distance from him.</p>
<p>Mrs. Dan, failing to interest Bob on orchids, now
took another tack. She sailed a conversational course
on caviar. Men usually like things to eat, and to talk
about them, especially such caviar as this. But Bob
eyed the almost priceless Malasol as if it were composed
of plain, ordinary fish-eggs. He didn’t even enthuse
when he took a sip of Moselle that matched the
Malasol and had more “bouquet” than the flowers.
So Mrs. Dan, again altering her conversational course,
sailed merrily before the wind amid the breeze of general
topics and gay light persiflage. She was at her
best now. There wasn’t anything she didn’t know
something about. She talked plays, operas and amusements
which gradually led her up to roof gardens.
She took her time, though, before laying the bowsprit
of her desires straight in the real direction she wished
to go. She knew she could proceed cautiously and circumspectly,
that there was no need for hurry; the meal
would be fairly prolonged. Mrs. Ralston’s dinners
were elaborate affairs; there might even be a few professional
entertainment features between courses.</p>
<p>“And speaking about roof gardens,” went on Mrs.
Dan, looking any way save at Bob, “I believe you were
telling me, only this afternoon, how you and dear Dan
were finally driven to them as a last resort. Poor
Dan! So glad to hear he could get a breath of fresh
air in that stuffy old town! Just hated to think of
him confined to some stuffy old office. Men work too
hard in our strenuous, bustling country, don’t you
think so? And then they break down prematurely.
I’ve always told Dan,” she rattled on, “to enjoy
himself—innocently, of course.” She paused to take
breath. “Don’t you think men work too hard in
America, Mr. Bennett?” she repeated.</p>
<p>“Sometimes,” said Bob.</p>
<p>She gave him a quick look. Perhaps she was proceeding
rather fast, though Bob didn’t look on his
guard. “As I told you, I adore roof gardens. But
you were telling me you men were not alone. What
harm!” she gurgled. “Some people,” talking fast,
“are so prudish. I’m sure we’re not put in the world
to be that. Don’t you agree?”</p>
<p>“Of course,” said Bob absently. He didn’t like the
way that fellow down on the other side of the table
was gazing into Miss Gwendoline’s eyes. “I beg your
pardon. I—I don’t think I caught that.”</p>
<p>“We were saying there were some wom—ladies
with you,” said Mrs. Dan quickly. Too quickly! She
strove to curb her precipitancy. “You remember?
You told me?” Her voice trailed off, as if it were a
matter of little interest.</p>
<p>“Did I?” Bob caught himself up with a jerk. He
felt now as if he were a big fish being angled for, and
gazed at her with sudden apprehension. The lady’s,
mien however, was reassuring.</p>
<p>“Of course,” she laughed. “Don’t you remember?”</p>
<p>“I believe I did say something of the kind.” Slowly.
He had had to.</p>
<p>“Surely you don’t deny now?” she continued playfully.</p>
<p>“No.” He had not spared himself. He couldn’t
spare Dan. The lady’s manner seemed to say: “<em>I</em>
don’t care a little bit.” Anyhow, the evening in question
had passed innocently, if frivolously, enough.
No harm would come to Dan in consequence. And
again Bob’s interest floated elsewhere.</p>
<p>He noticed Miss Gwendoline did not seem exactly
averse to letting that fellow by her side gaze into her
eyes. Confound the fellow! He had one of those
open honest faces. A likable chap, too! One of the
Olympian-game brand! A weight-putter, or hammer-thrower,
or something of the kind. Bob could have
heaved considerable of a sledge himself at that moment.</p>
<p>“Of course, boys will be boys,” prattled Mrs. Dan
at his side, just in the least stridently. “I suppose you
sat down and they just happened along and sat down,
too! You couldn’t very well refuse to let them, could
you? That wouldn’t have been very polite?” She
hardly knew what she was saying herself now. Though
a conversational general, on most occasions, her inward
emotion was now running apace. It was almost
beating her judgment in the race. She tried to pull
herself together. “Why, in Paris, doing the sights at
the Jardin or the Moulin Rouge, or the Casino de
Paris, every one takes it or them—these chance acquaintances—as
a matter of course. <em>Pour passer le
temps!</em> And why not?” With a shrug and in her
sprightliest manner. “So the ladies in this instance,
as you were saying, came right up, too, and—?”</p>
<p>She paused. That was crude—clumsy—even though
she rattled it off as if without thinking. She was losing
all her finesse. But again, to her surprise, the fish
took the bait. She did not know Bob’s predicament—that
<em>he</em> couldn’t finesse.</p>
<p>“Yes, they came up,” said Bob reluctantly, though
pleased that Mrs. Dan appeared such a good kind of
fellow.</p>
<p>“Show-girls?” asked the lady quickly.</p>
<p>“Well—ah!—two of them were.”</p>
<p>“Two? And what were the others?”</p>
<p>Bob again regarded the lady apprehensively, but
her expression was eminently reassuring. It went
with the music, the bright flowers and the rest of the
gay scene. Mrs. Dan’s smile was one of unadulterated
enjoyment; she didn’t seem displeased at all.
Must be she wasn’t displeased! Perhaps she was like
some of those model French wives who aren’t averse
at all to having other ladies attentive to their husbands?
Mrs. Dan had lived in Paris and might have
acquired with a real accent an accompanying broad-mindedness
of character. That might be what made
the dear old commodore act so happy most of the time,
and so juvenile, too! Mrs. Dan <em>looked</em> broad-minded.
She had a broad face and her figure was broad—very!
At the moment she seemed fairly to radiate
broad-mindedness and again Bob felt glad—on the
commodore’s account. He had nothing to feel glad about,
himself, with that confounded hammer-thrower—</p>
<p>“Who were the others, did you say?” repeated
Mrs. Dan, in her most broad-minded tone.</p>
<p>She seemed only talking to make conversation and
looked away unconcernedly as she spoke. Lucky for
Dan she was broad-minded—that they had once been
expatriates together! Even if she hadn’t been, however,
Bob would have had to tell the truth.</p>
<p>“Who were the others?” he repeated absently, one
eye on Miss Gerald. “Oh, they were ‘ponies.’”</p>
<p>“‘Ponies,’” said the lady giving a slight start and
then recovering. “I beg your pardon, but—ah—do you
happen to be referring to the horse-show?”</p>
<p>“Not at all,” answered Bob. “The ponies I refer
to,” wearily, “are not equine.” These technical explanations
were tiresome. At that moment he was
more concerned with the hammer-thrower, who had
evidently just hurled a witticism at Miss Gerald, for
both were laughing. Would that Bob could have caught
the silvery sound of her voice! Would he had been
near enough! Across the table, the little dark thing
threw him a few consolatory glances. He had almost
forgotten about her. Miss Dolly’s temperamental
eyes seemed to say “Drink to me only with thine eyes,”
and Bob responded recklessly to the invitation. The
little dark thing seemed the only one on earth who was
good to him. He drank to her with his eyes—without
becoming intoxicated. Then she held a glass to her
lips and gazed at him over it. He held one to his
and did likewise. He should have become doubly intoxicated,
but he didn’t. He set down his glass mournfully.
Miss Gerald noticed this sentimental little byplay,
but what Bob did was, of course, of no moment
to her.</p>
<p>“Ponies, Mr. Bennett? And not equine?” Mrs.
Dan with difficulty succeeded in again riveting Bob’s
wandering attention. “Ah, of course!” Her accents
rising frivolously. “How stupid of me!” Gaily.
“You mean the kind that do the dancing in the musical
shows.” And Mrs. Dan glanced a little furtively
at her right.</p>
<p>But on that side the good bishop was still expounding
earnestly to the lady he had brought in. He was
not in the least interested in what Mrs. Dan and Bob
were saying. He was too much concerned in what he
was saying himself. At Bob’s left sat the young lady
who had been his partner at tennis in the afternoon
but she, obviously, took absolutely no interest in Bob
now. He had a vague recollection of having been
forced to say something in her hearing, earlier in the
day, that had sounded almost as bad as his tennis-playing
had been. Truth, according to the philosophers,
is beautiful. Only it doesn’t seem to be! This young
lady had turned as much of the back of a bare “cold
shoulder” on Bob at the table as she could. In fact,
she made it quite clear Mrs. Dan could have the young
man entirely to herself. So Mrs. Dan and Bob were
really as alone, for confidential conversational purposes,
as if they had been secluded in some retired
cozy-corner.</p>
<p>“Two show-girls and two ponies!” Mrs. Dan went
on blithely. “That made one apiece.” With a laugh.
“Who got the ponies?”</p>
<p>“Clarence got one.”</p>
<p>“And Dan?”</p>
<p>Bob nodded. He had to, it was in the contract.
The lady laughed again right gaily.</p>
<p>“Dan always did like the turf,” she breathed softly.
“So fond of the track, or anything equine.”</p>
<p>For the moment Bob became again almost suspicious
of her, she was <em>such</em> a “good fellow”! And Bob
wasn’t revengeful; because he had suffered himself
he didn’t wish the commodore any harm. Of course
it would be rather a ghastly joke on the commodore if
Mrs. Dan wasn’t such a “good fellow” as she seemed.
But Bob dismissed that contingency. He was helpless,
anyway. He was no more than a chip in a stream. The
current of Mrs. Dan’s questions carried him along.</p>
<p>“And what did the pony Dan got, look like?”</p>
<p>“I think she had reddish hair.”</p>
<p>“How lurid! I suppose you all had a few ponies
with the ponies?” Jocularly.</p>
<p>“Yes,” said the answering-machine.</p>
<p>“I suppose the ponies had names? They usually
do,” she rattled on.</p>
<p>“Yes. They had names, of course.”</p>
<p>“What was Dan’s called?”</p>
<p>The orchestra was playing a little louder now—one
of those wild pieces—a rhapsody!</p>
<p>“Don’t know her real name.”</p>
<p>“Her stage name, then?”</p>
<p>“Not sure of that!” Doubtfully.</p>
<p>“But Dan <em>must</em> have called her something?” With
a gay little laugh.</p>
<p>“Yes.” Bob hesitated. In spite of that funereal
feeling, he couldn’t suppress a grin. “He called her
Gee-gee.”</p>
<p>“Gee-gee!” almost shrieked the lady. Then she
laughed harder than ever. She was certainly a good
actress. At that moment she caught Mrs. Clarence
Van Duzen’s eye; it was coldly questioning.</p>
<p>“And what did the pony Clarence got, look like?”
Mrs. Dan had passed the stage of analyzing or reasoning
clearly. She didn’t even ask herself why Bob
wasn’t more evasive. She didn’t want to know
whether it was that “good-fellow” manner on her part
that had really deceived him into unbosoming the truth
to her, or whether—well, he had been drinking too
much? He held himself soberly enough, it is true, but
there are strong men who look sober and can walk a
chalk line, when they aren’t sober at all. Bob might
belong to that class. She thought she had detected
something on his breath when he passed on the links
and he might have been “hitting it up” pretty hard
since, on the side, with some of the men. In “vino
veritas”! But whether “vino,” or denseness on his
part, she was sure of the “veritas.” Instinct told her
she had heard the truth.</p>
<p>“And Clarence’s pony—did she have red hair, too?”
She put the question in a different way, for Bob was
hesitating again.</p>
<p>“No.”</p>
<p>“What was its hue?”</p>
<p>“Peroxide, I guess.” Gloomily.</p>
<p>“Is that all you remember?” Mrs. Dan now was
plying questions recklessly, regardlessly, as if Bob
were on the witness-stand and she were state prosecutor.</p>
<p>“About all. Oh!—her nose turned up and she had
a freckle.”</p>
<p>“How interesting!” Mrs. Dan’s laugh was rather
forced, and she and Mrs. Clarence again exchanged
glances, but Bob didn’t notice. “And what was she
called?” Breathing a little hard.</p>
<p>“Gid-up,” said Bob gravely.</p>
<p>“‘Gid-up’!” Again the lady almost had a paroxysm,
but whether or not of mirth, who shall say.
“Gee-gee and Gid-up!” Her broad bosom rose and
fell.</p>
<p>“Telegram, sir!” At that moment Bob heard another
voice at his elbow. Across the table the man
with the monocle was gazing at him curiously.</p>
<h1 id='t2519'>CHAPTER VII—VARYING VICISSITUDES</h1>
<p>A footman had brought the message, which
Bob now took and opened mechanically. It was
from the commodore.</p>
<p>“For heaven’s sake,” it ran, “return at once to New
York Will explain.”</p>
<p>Bob eyed it gloomily. The commodore must have
been considerably rattled when he had sent that.</p>
<p>“Any answer, sir?” said the footman.</p>
<p>Bob shook his head. What could he answer? He
couldn’t run away now; the commodore ought to know
that. Of all fool telegrams!—</p>
<p>“A business message, I suppose?” purred the lady
at his side. “I trust it is nothing very important, to
call you away?”</p>
<p>“No, I shouldn’t call it important,” said Bob.
“Quite unnecessary, I should call it.”</p>
<p>He crumpled up the message and thrust it into his
pocket. At that moment one of Mrs. Ralston’s paid
performers—a high-class monologist—began to earn
his fee. He was quite funny and soon had every one
laughing. Bob strove to forget his troubles and laugh
too. Mrs. Dan couldn’t very well talk to him now,
and relieved from that lady’s pertinent prattle, he
gradually let that “dull-care grip” slip from his resistless
fingers. Welcoming the mocking goddess of the
cap and bells, he yielded to the infectious humor and
before long forgot the telegram and everything save
that crop of near-new stories.</p>
<p>But when the dinner was finally over, he found
himself, again wrapped in deep gloom, wandering
alone on the broad balcony. He didn’t just know how
he came to be out there all alone—whether he drifted
away from people or whether they drifted away from
him. Anyhow he wasn’t burdened with any one’s company.
He entertained a vague recollection that several
people had turned their backs on him. So if he was
forced to lead a hermit’s life it wasn’t his fault. Probably
old Diogenes hadn’t <em>wanted</em> to live in that tub;
people had made him. They wouldn’t stand him in
a house. There wasn’t room for him and any one else
in the biggest house ever built. So the only place
where truth could find that real, cozy, homey feeling
was <em>alone</em> in a tub. And things weren’t any better
to-day. Nice commentary on our boasted “advanced
civilization!”</p>
<p>Bob felt as if he were the most-alone man in the
world! Why, he was so lonesome, he wasn’t even acquainted
with himself. This was only his “double”
walking here. He knew now what that German poet
was driving at in those <em>Der Doppleganger</em> verses. His
“double” was alone. Where was he?—the real he—the
original ego? Hanged if he knew! He looked up at
the moon, but it couldn’t tell him. At the same time,
in spite of that new impersonal relationship he had
established toward himself, he felt he ought to be immensely
relieved in one respect. There would be no
“cozy-cornering” for him that evening. He had the
whole wide world to himself. He could be a wandering
Jew as well as a <em>Doppleganger</em>, if he wanted to.</p>
<p>He made out now two shadows, or figures, in the
moonlight. Mrs. Dan and Mrs. Clarence were walking
and talking together, but somehow he wasn’t at all
curious about them. His mental faculties seemed
numbed, as if his brain were way off somewhere—between
the earth and the moon, perhaps. Then he
heard the purring of a car, which seemed way off, too.
He saw Mrs. Dan and Mrs. Clarence get into the car
and heard Mrs. Dan murmur something about the village
and the telegraph office, and the car slid downward.
Bob watched its rear light receding this way
and that, like a will-o’-the-wisp, or a lonesome firefly,
until it disappeared on the winding road. A cool breeze
touched him without cooling his brow. Bob threw
away a cigar. What’s the use of smoking when you
don’t taste the weed?</p>
<p>He wondered what he should do now? Go to bed,
or—? It was too early for bed. He wouldn’t go to bed
at that hour, if he kept to that even-tenor-of-his-way
condition. He hadn’t violated any condition, so far.
Those fellows who had inveigled him into this wild
and woolly moving-picture kind of an impossible
freak performance would have to concede that. There
could be no ground for complaint that he wasn’t living
up to the letter and spirit of his agreement, even
at the sacrifice of his most sacred feelings. Yes, by
yonder gracious lady of the glorious moon! He wondered
where <em>his</em> gracious lady was now and what she
was doing? Of course, the hammer-thrower was
with her.</p>
<p>“Are you meditating on your loneliness, Mr. Bennett?”
said a well-remembered voice. The tones were
even and composed. They were also distantly cold.
Bob wheeled. Stars of a starry night! It was she.</p>
<hr class='tb'/>
<p>She came right up and spoke to him—the pariah—the
abhorred of many! His heart gave a thump and
he could feel its hammering as his glowing eyes met
the beautiful icy ones.</p>
<p>“How did you get rid of him?” he breathed hoarsely.</p>
<p>“Him?” said Miss Gwendoline Gerald, in a tone
whose stillness should have warned Bob.</p>
<p>“That sledge-hammer man? That weight-putter?
That Olympian village blacksmith, I mean? The fellow
with the open honest face?”</p>
<p>“I don’t believe I understand,” observed the young
lady, straight and proud as a wonderful princess in
the moonlight. Bob gazed at her in rapture. Talk
about the shoulders of that girl who had given him
the cold shoulder at the dinner-table!—Miss Gwendoline’s
shoulders were a thousand times superior;
they would cause any sculptor to rave. Their plastic
beauty was that of the purest marble in that pure
light. And that pure, perfect face, likewise bathed
in the celestial flood of light—until now, never had
he quite realized what he had lost, in losing her.</p>
<p>“But never mind about explaining,” went on the
vision, apropos of Bob’s Olympian, village-blacksmith
remark. “I didn’t come to discuss generalities.”</p>
<p>“Of course not,” assented Bob eagerly.</p>
<p>The music from the house now sounded suspiciously
like a trot. Miss Gerald saw, though indistinctly, a
face look out of the door. It might have been the little
dark thing peering around for Bob, for she was
quite capable of doing that. Bob didn’t notice her—if
it were she. He had eyes for but one. He was worshiping
in that distant, eager, hungry, lost-soul kind
of a way. Miss Gerald’s glance returned to Bob.</p>
<p>“Will you be so good as to take a turn or two about
the garden with me?” she said in a calm, if hard and
matter-of-fact tone. A number of people were now
approaching from the other end of the broad, partially-enclosed
space and Miss Gerald had observed them.</p>
<p>“Will I?” Bob’s accents expressed more eloquently
than words how he felt about complying with that request.
Would a man dying of thirst drink a goblet of
cool, sparkling spring-water? Would a miser refuse
gold? Or a canine a bone? “Will I?” repeated Bob,
ecstatically, and threw back his shoulders. Thus men
go forth to conquer. He did not realize how unique
he was at the moment, for he was quite swept away.
The girl cast on him a quick enigmatic glance, then led
the way.</p>
<p>Sometimes his eyes turned to the stars and sometimes
toward her as they moved along. In the latter
instance, they were almost proprietary, as if he knew
she ought to belong to him, though she never would.
The stars seemed to say she was made for him, the
breeze to whisper it. Of course, he hadn’t really any
right to act “proprietary”; it was taking a certain
poetic license with the situation. Once Miss Gerald
caught that proprietary look and into the still depths
of her own gaze sprang an expression of wonder. But
it didn’t linger; her eyes became once more coldly,
proudly assured.</p>
<p>Bob didn’t ask whither she was leading him, or what
fate had in store for him. Sufficient unto the present
moment was the happiness thereof! A fool’s paradise
is better than no paradise at all. He didn’t stop now
to consider that he might be playing with verity when
he hugged to his breast an illusory joy.</p>
<p>She didn’t talk at first, but he didn’t find anything
to complain of in that. It was blissful enough just to
swing along silently at her side. He didn’t have to
bother about the truth-proposition when she didn’t say
anything. He could yield to a quiet unadulterated joy
in the stillness. If denied, temporarily, the music of
her voice, he was, at least, privileged to visualize her,
as she walked along the narrow path with the freedom
and grace of a young goddess, or one of Diana’s lithe
forest attendants. The vision, at length, stopped at
the verge of a terrace where stood an Italian-looking
little summer-house, or shelter. No one was in it,
and she entered. They wouldn’t be disturbed here.</p>
<p>She leaned on a marble balustrade and for a moment
looked down upon the shadowy tree-tops. The moonlight
glinted a rounded white arm. Bob breathed deep.
It was a spot for lovers. But there was still no love-light
in Miss Gerald’s eyes. They met the gaze of Bob,
who hadn’t yet come out of that paradoxical trance,
with cold contemplation.</p>
<p>“Do you know what people are beginning to say
about you, Mr. Bennett?” began the vision, with considerable
decision in her tones.</p>
<p>“No,” said Bob.</p>
<p>“Some of them are wondering—well, if you are
mentally quite all right.”</p>
<p>“Are they?” It was more the silvery sound of her
voice than what people were saying that interested
Bob.</p>
<p>“The judge and Mrs. Vanderpool have agreed that
you aren’t. People are a little divided in the matter.”</p>
<p>“Indeed?” observed Bob. Of course if people were
“divided,” that would make it more interesting for
them. Give them something to talk about!</p>
<p>“The doctor agrees with the judge and Mrs. Vanderpool,
but the bishop seems inclined to give you the
benefit of the doubt,” went on Miss Gerald, her silvery
tones as tranquil and cold as moonlight on the
still surface of an inland sea. “He said something
about inherited eccentricities, probably just beginning
to crop out. Or suggested it might be—well, a pose.”</p>
<p>“Very nice of the bishop!” muttered Bob. “Benefit
of the doubt? Quite so! Fine old chap!”</p>
<p>“Is that all you have to say?” said Miss Gerald, a
faint note of scorn in her voice now. As she spoke
she leaned slightly toward him. The moonlight touched
the golden hair.</p>
<p>“Maybe he felt he had to differ,” remarked Bob, intent
on the golden hair (it wasn’t golden out here, of
course) and the stars beyond. “He might not really
differ at heart, but he had to seem broad and charitable.
Ecclesiastical obligation, or habit, don’t you
see!”</p>
<p>“I don’t quite see,” said the girl, though her bright
eyes looked capable of seeing a great deal.</p>
<p>“No?” murmured Bob. Some of that paradoxical
happiness seemed to be fading from him. He couldn’t
hold it; it seemed as elusive as moonshine. If only
she would stand there silently and let him continue to
worship her, like that devout lover in the song—in
“distant reverence.” It wasn’t surely quite consistent
for a goddess to be so practical and matter-of-fact.</p>
<p>“There are others who agree with the doctor and the
judge and Mrs. Vanderpool,” continued the girl.</p>
<p>“You mean about my having a screw loose?”</p>
<p>“Exactly.” Crisply. “And some of them have
consulted me.”</p>
<p>“And what did you say?” Quickly.</p>
<p>“I’m afraid I couldn’t enlighten them. I believe I
suggested that sun theory—although it really wasn’t
blistering hot to-day, and you,” with inimitable irony,
“look capable of standing a little sunshine.”</p>
<p>“Yes, I feel as if I could stand a whole lot,” said
Bob gloomily.</p>
<p>“Also I said,” unmindful of this last remark, “there
is sometimes a method in eccentricity, or madness.
Lord Stanfield agreed with me. He said he found
you an ‘interesting young man.’”</p>
<p>“Did he? Confound his impudence!” That monocle-man
certainly did ruffle Bob.</p>
<p>“You forget he’s an old friend of my aunt’s.” Severely.
“As I was saying, Lord Stanfield found you
‘interesting,’ and we agreed there might be a method,”
studying him closely, “but when we came to search for
one, we couldn’t find it.”</p>
<p>She didn’t ask a question, so he didn’t have to reply.</p>
<p>“Mr. Bennett, why did you answer me like that
down in the village?”</p>
<p>Bob hung his head. He felt worse than a boy detected
stealing apples. “Had to,” he muttered desperately.</p>
<p>“Why?” There was no mercy in that still pitiless
voice.</p>
<p>Bob took another long breath. “Please don’t ask
me,” he pleaded after an ominous pause. That wasn’t
not telling the truth; it was only temporizing.</p>
<p>The violet eyes gleamed dangerously. “I’m just a
little bit curious,” said the girl in the same annihilating
tone. “In the light of subsequent proceedings, you
will understand! And as Mrs. Ralston’s niece! Aunt
doesn’t quite realize things yet. The others have spared
her feelings. I haven’t, of course, gone to her. Aunt
and I never ‘talk over’ our guests.” Proudly.</p>
<p>That made Bob wince. He looked at her with quite
helpless eyes. “Maybe she will order me off the premises
before long,” he said eagerly. “I have already
been considering the possibility of it. Believe me,”
earnestly, “it would be the best way. Can’t you see
I’m—dangerous—positively dangerous? I’m worse
than a socialist—an anarchist! Why, a Russian
nihilist couldn’t make half the trouble in the world that
I can. I’m a regular walking disturber. Disaster follows
in my path.” Bitterly. “Some people look upon
me as worse than the black plague. Now if your aunt
would only turn me out? You see I can’t go unless she
does. Got to think of that even-tenor-of-my-way! But
if she would only quietly intimate—or set the dog on
me—”</p>
<p>The girl gazed at him more steadily. “I wonder
if the judge and the doctor and Mrs. Vanderpool
aren’t right, after all?” she observed slowly. “Let me
look in your eyes, Mr. Bennett.” Bob did. Miss
Gerald had heard that one could always tell crazy people
by their eyes. She intended to sift this matter to
the bottom and therefore proceeded with characteristic
directness. Folk that were—well, “off,” she had been
told, invariably showed that they were that, by a peculiar
glitter.</p>
<p>Miss Gerald gazed a few moments critically, steadily
and with unswerving intention. Bob withstood that
look with mingled wretchedness and rapture. He began
to forget that they were just the eyes of a would-be
expert on a mental matter, and his own eyes, looking
deeper and deeper in those wonderful violet depths
(he stood so she got the benefit of the moonlight) began
to gleam with that old, old gleam Miss Gerald
could remember in the past. Bob had never <em>talked</em>
love in those blissful days of yore, but he had
looked it.</p>
<p>“I don’t see any signs of insanity,” said the girl
at length with cold assurance. That gleam wasn’t a
glitter. Nothing crazy about it! She had seen it too
often in other men’s eyes, as well as in Bob’s—not perhaps
to such a marked degree in other men’s eyes,-but
sufficiently so that she was fairly familiar with it.
“You look normal enough to me.”</p>
<p>“Thank you,” said Bob gratefully.</p>
<p>“And that’s just why”—a slight frown on the
smooth fine brow—“I don’t understand. Of course,
a man not normal, might have answered as you did
me (I’m not thinking of it as a personal matter, you
will understand).”</p>
<p>“Oh, I understand that,” returned Bob. “I’m just
a problem, not a person.” She made him quite realize
that. She made it perfectly and unmistakably apparent
that he was, unto her, as some example in trigonometry,
or geometry, or algebra, and she wanted
to find the “solution.” He was an “X”—the unknown
quantity. The expression on her patrician
features was entirely scholastic and calculating. Bob
now felt the ardor of his gaze becoming cold as moonlight.
This wasn’t a lovers’ bower; it was only a
<em>palestra</em>, or an observatory.</p>
<p>“You haven’t answered me yet,” she said.</p>
<p>No diverting her from her purpose! She was certainly
persistent.</p>
<p>“You insist I shall tell you why I didn’t want to
see you?”</p>
<p>She looked at him quickly. “That isn’t what I asked,
Mr. Bennett. I asked you to explain that remark in
the village.”</p>
<p>“Same thing!” he murmured. “And it’s rather hard
to explain, but if I’ve got to—?” He looked at her.
On her face was the look of proud unyielding insistence.
“Of course, I’ve got to tell you the truth,” said
Bob, and his tone now was dead and dull. “In the first
place, dad’s busted, clean down and out, and—well, I
thought I wouldn’t see you any more.”</p>
<p>“I fail to see the connection.” Her tones were as
metallic as a voice like hers could make them.</p>
<p>“It’s like this!” said Bob, ruffling his hair. Here
was a fine romantic way to make an avowal. “You see
I was in love with you,” he observed, looking the other
way and addressing one of the furthermost stars of
the heaven. “And—and—when a fellow’s in love—and
he can’t—ah!—well, you know—ask the girl—you
understand?”</p>
<p>“Very vaguely,” said Miss Gerald. Bob’s explanation,
so far, was one of those explanations that didn’t
explain. If he had so heroically made up his mind
not to see her, he could have stayed away, of course,
from the Ralston house. He couldn’t explain how he
was bound to accept the invitation to come, on account
of being in “honor bound” to that confounded
commodore, et al., to do so. There were bound to be
loose ends to his explanation. Besides, those other awfully
unpleasant things that had happened? He had to
tell the truth, but he couldn’t tell why he was telling
the truth. That had been the understanding.</p>
<p>Miss Gerald, at this point, began to display some of
those alert and analytical qualities of mind that had
made her father one of the great railroad men of his
day. For an instant she had turned her head slightly
at Bob’s avowal—who shall say why? It may be she
had felt the blood rush swiftly to her face, but if so a
moment later she looked at him with that same icy
calm. One hand had tightened on the cold balustrade,
but Bob hadn’t noticed that. She plied him now with
a number of questions. She kept him on the gridiron
and while he wriggled and twisted she stirred up the
coals, displaying all the ability of an expert stoker. He
was supersensitive about seeing her and yet as a free
agent (she thought him that) he <em>had</em> seen her. From
her point of view, his mental processes were hopelessly
illogical—worse than that. Yet she knew he was possessed
of a tolerable mentality and a good-enough
judgment for one who had in his composition a slight
touch of recklessness.</p>
<p>“I give it up,” she said at length wearily.</p>
<p>“Do you? Oh, thank you!” exclaimed Bob gratefully.
“And if your aunt orders me from the place—”</p>
<p>“But why can’t you just go, if you want to? I’m
sure no one will detain you.” Haughtily.</p>
<p>“Can’t explain, only it’s impossible. Like Prometheus
bound to the rock for vultures to peck at, unless—”</p>
<p>“How intelligible! And what a happy simile—under
the circumstances!” with far-reaching scorn. “What
if I should tell my aunt that her guest compared himself
to—?”</p>
<p>“That’s the idea!” returned Bob enthusiastically.
“Tell her that! Then, by jove, she would—Promise
me! Please!”</p>
<p>“Of course,” said the girl slowly, “my diagnosis
must be wrong.” Or perhaps she meant that she had
lost faith in that glitter-theory.</p>
<p>“If you only <em>could</em> understand!” burst from Bob
explosively. It was nature calling out, protesting
against such a weight of anguish.</p>
<p>But Miss Gerald did not respond. A statue could not
have appeared more unaffected and unsympathetic.
She had half turned as if to go; then she changed her
mind and lingered. It annoyed her to feel she had
been baffled, for she was a young woman who liked to
drive right to the heart of things. Her father had
been called a “czar” in his world, and she had inherited,
with other of his traits, certain imperious
qualities. So for a moment or two she stood thinking.</p>
<p>An automobile from the village went by them and
proceeded to the house. It contained Mrs. Dan and
Mrs. Clarence returning from the telegraph office, but
Bob hardly saw it, or was aware who were its occupants.
Miss Gerald absorbed him to the exclusion of
all else now. He had no mind for other storms that
might be gathering. Suddenly the girl turned on him
with abrupt swiftness.</p>
<h1 id='t3016'>CHAPTER VIII—NEW COMPLICATIONS</h1>
<p>“Is your father’s embarrassment serious?” she asked.</p>
<p>Bob looked startled. He didn’t like the way she
had shifted the conversation. “Pretty bad,” he answered.</p>
<p>“I believe, though, it’s customary for men on the
‘street’ not to stay ‘downed,’ as they say?”</p>
<p>“Don’t know as it’s an invariable rule,” returned
Bob evasively. Then realizing it wouldn’t do to be
evasive: “As a matter of fact, I don’t believe I’m very
well posted as to that,” he added.</p>
<p>“What does your father say?” she asked abruptly.</p>
<p>Bob would much rather not have talked about that
with her. But—“Dad says there is no hope,” he had
to say.</p>
<p>Miss Gerald was silent for a moment. As a child
she remembered a very gloomy period in her own
father’s career—when the “street” had him “cornered.”
She remembered the funereal atmosphere of
the big old house—the depression on nearly every one’s
face—how everything had seemed permeated with impending
tragedy. She remembered how her father
looked at her, a great gloomy ghost of himself with
somber burning eyes. She remembered how seared
and seamed his strong and massive face had become in
but a few days. But that was long ago and he had long
since left her for good. The vivid impression, however,
of that gloomy period during her childhood remained
with her. It had always haunted her, though
her father had not been “downed” in the end. He
had emerged from the storm stronger than ever.</p>
<p>The girl shot a sidewise look at Bob, standing now
with his arms folded like Hamlet. Perhaps he had
come from such a funereal house as she, herself, so well
remembered? Had dad’s trouble, or tragedy, weighed
on him unduly? Had it made him—for the moment—just
slightly irresponsible? Miss Gerald, as has
been intimated, had frankly liked Bob as an outdoor
companion, or an indoor one, too, sometimes, for that
matter. He was one of the few men, for example,
she would “trot” with. He could “trot” in an eminently
respectful manner, being possessed of an innate
refinement, or chivalry, which certainly seemed good
to her, after some of those other wild Terpsichorean
performances of myriad masculine manikins in the
mad world of Milliondom.</p>
<p>“I suppose your father has taken his trouble much
to heart?” Miss Gerald now observed.</p>
<p>“Not a bit.”</p>
<p>“No?” In surprise.</p>
<p>“No.”</p>
<p>“Why not?”</p>
<p>“Said he looked to me to keep him in affluence the
rest of his days.”</p>
<p>“To you?”</p>
<p>“That’s right.”</p>
<p>“But how?—What are you going to do?”</p>
<p>“Hustle.”</p>
<p>“At what?”</p>
<p>“Don’t know. Got to find out.”</p>
<p>“What did you plan doing, when at college?”</p>
<p>“Nothing.”</p>
<p>“Is it”—Miss Gerald got back to where she had
been before—“the sense of awful responsibility,” with
slight sarcasm, “that has turned your brain?”</p>
<p>“I’m not crazy.”</p>
<p>“No?” She remembered that most people in asylums
say that.</p>
<p>“Though I may be in a matter of three weeks,” Bob
added, more to himself than to her.</p>
<p>“Why three weeks?”</p>
<p>“Well, if I don’t—just shouldn’t happen to go crazy
during that time, I’ll be all right, after that.”</p>
<p>“Why do you allow a specified period for your mental
deterioration?”</p>
<p>“<em>I</em> didn’t allow it.”</p>
<p>“Who did?”</p>
<p>“Can’t tell you.”</p>
<p>Miss Gerald pondered on this answer. It would
seem as if Bob had “hallucinations,” if nothing worse.
He was possessed of the idea, no doubt, that he would
go crazy within three weeks. He didn’t realize that
the “deterioration,” she referred to, might have already
begun. He looked normal enough, though, had the
most normal-looking eyes. Could it be that he was
acting? And if he was acting, why was he? That
seemed incomprehensible. Anyhow, it couldn’t be a
sense of responsibility that had “upset” Bob. She
became sure of that now. He played a losing game
with too much dash and brilliancy! Hadn’t she seen
him at polo—hadn’t she held her breath and thrilled
when he had “sailed in” and with irresistible vim
snatched victory out of defeat? No; Bob wasn’t a
“quitter.”</p>
<p>“So your father looks to you to support him?”</p>
<p>“So he said. The governor’s a bit of a joker though,
you know. He may be only putting up a bluff to try
me out.”</p>
<p>“What did he advise you to do?”</p>
<p>Bob shivered. “Matrimonial market.”</p>
<p>“You mean—?”</p>
<p>“Heiress.” Succinctly.</p>
<p>“Any particular one?”</p>
<p>“Dad did mention a name.”</p>
<p>“Not—?” She looked at him.</p>
<p>“Yes.”</p>
<p>An awful pause.</p>
<p>“Now you know why I didn’t want to see you,” said
Bob, in that even fatalistic voice. “First place, I
wouldn’t ask you to marry me, if you were the last
girl in the world! Second place, I was afraid if I saw
you, some of these things dad said to try me, would
be bound to pop out. You mustn’t think badly of dad,
Miss Gerald. As I’ve said, he didn’t mean a word of
it. He was only sizing me up. Don’t I know that
twinkle in his eye? Just wanted to see if I’m as lazy
and good-for-nothing as some chaps brought up with
the silver spoon. Why, he’d—honestly, dad would just
kick me, if I took his advice. Why, if I went back
home to-morrow,” went on Bob, warming to the subject,
“and told him we were engaged”—the girl moved
slightly—“and were going to be married right off”—the
girl moved again—“why—why, old as I am, dad
would take off his coat and give me a good trouncing.
That’s the kind of a man dad is. I see it all now.”</p>
<p>He really believed he did—and for the first time.
He felt he had solved the mystery of dad’s manner
and conduct. It <em>had</em> been a mystery, but the solution
had come to him like an inspiration. Dad wanted to
see whether he would arise to the occasion. He had
told him he didn’t believe he was worth his salt just
to see his backbone stiffen. He had alluded to that
other way of repairing the “busted family credit” just
to observe the effect on Bob. And how dad must
have chuckled inwardly at Bob’s response! Why,
they’d almost had a scene, he and good old dad. Bob
could smile at it now—if he could smile at anything.
He certainly had been a numskull. Dad, pulling in
fish somewhere, was probably still chuckling to himself,
and wondering how Bob would work out the
problem.</p>
<p>“Dad was always just like that when I was a boy,”
he confided to Miss Gerald, now standing more than
ever like a marble lady in the moonlight. “He would
propose the contrariest things! Always trying and
testing me. Guess that’s why he acted so happy
when he went broke. Thought it would make a man
of me! By jove, that’s it! Why, he was as care-free
as a boy with a new top!”</p>
<p>“Was he, indeed?” said Miss Gerald, studying Mr.
Robert Bennett with eyes that looked very deep now,
beneath the imperious brows. “How nice!” Oh, that
tone was distant. It might have been wafted from one
who stood on an iceberg.</p>
<p>“Isn’t it?” Bob heaved a sigh. “I’m not afraid
of you any more,” he said, “now that I’ve got that off
my chest.”</p>
<p>Again Miss Gerald shivered slightly, but whether
at the slang or not, was not apparent.</p>
<p>“You can’t frighten me any more,” said Bob.</p>
<p>“But why,” said Miss Gerald, “did you tell me, at
all, of dad’s—as you call him—charming suggestion?”</p>
<p>“Had to. Didn’t you ask me?” In faint surprise.
Then he remembered she didn’t know he <em>had</em> to tell the
truth. That made him look rather foolish—or “imbecile,”
in the light of all those other proceedings. Miss
Gerald’s brow contracted once more. Again she might
be asking herself if Master Robert was acting? Was
this but gigantic, bombastic, Quixotic “posing” after
all? It was too extraordinary to speak of such things
as he had spoken of, to her! Did he only want to
appear different? Did he seek to combine Apollo with
Bernard Shaw in his attitude toward society? Or had
he been reading Chesterton and was he but striving to
present in his own personality a futurist’s effect of
upside-downness? Miss Gerald felt now the way she
had at the modernists’ exhibition, when she had gazed
and gazed at what was apparently a load of wood falling
down-stairs, and some one had told her to find the
lady. It was about as difficult to-night to find the real
Mr. Bennett—the happy-go-lucky Bob Bennett of last
month or last week—as it had been to find that lady
where appeared only chaotic kindling wood.</p>
<p>Miss Gerald let the cool air fan her brow for a few
moments. This young man was, at least, exhilarating.
She felt a little dizzy. Meanwhile Bob looked at her
with that sad silly smile.</p>
<p>“You can’t ask me any questions that will disconcert
me now,” he boasted.</p>
<p>Miss Gerald looked at him squarely. “Will you
marry me?” she said.</p>
<p>It was a coup. Her father had been capable of just
such coups as that. He would hit the enemy in the
most unexpected manner in the most unexpected quarter,
and thus overwhelm his foes. Miss Gerald might
not mean it; she, most likely, only said it. Under the
circumstances, to get at the truth herself, she was
justified in saying almost anything. If he were but
posing, she would prick the bubble of his pretense. If
those grandiloquent, and, to her, totally unnecessary
protestations didn’t mean anything, she wished to know
it. He would never, never marry her,—wouldn’t he?
Or, possibly, her question was but part of a plan, or
general campaign, on her part, to test his sanity? Six
persons—real competents, too!—had affirmed that he
wasn’t “just right.” Be that as it may, Miss Gerald
dropped this bomb in Master Bob’s camp and waited
the effect with mien serene.</p>
<p>Her query worked the expected havoc, all right.
Bob’s jaw fell. Then his eyes began to flash with a
new fierce love-light. He couldn’t help it. Marry
her?—Great Scott!—She, asking him, if he would? He
felt his pulses beating faster and the blood pumping
in his veins. His arms went out—very eager, strong,
primitive arms they looked—that cave-man kind!
Arms that seize resistless maidens and enfold them,
willy-nilly! Miss Gerald really should have felt much
alarmed, especially as there was so much doubt as to
Bob’s sanity. It’s bad enough to be alone with an
ordinary crazy man, but a crazy man who is in love
with one? That is calculated to be a rather unusual
and thrilling experience.</p>
<p>However, though Miss Gerald may have entertained
a few secret fears and possible regrets for her own
somewhat mad precipitancy, she managed to maintain
a fair semblance of composure. She had the courage
to “stand by” the coup. She was like a tall lily that
seems to hold itself unafraid before the breaking of
the tempest. She did not even draw back, though
she threw her head back slightly. And in her eyes was
a challenge. Not a love challenge, though Bob could
not discern that! His own gaze was too blurred.</p>
<p>Miss Gerald suddenly drew in her breath quickly,
as one who felt she would need her courage now. Almost
had Bob, in that moment of forgetfulness, drawn
her into his arms and so completed the paradoxical
picture of himself, when the impulse was abruptly
arrested. He seemed suddenly to awaken to a saner
comprehension of the requirements of the moment.
His arms fell to his side.</p>
<p>“That’s a joke, of course,” he said hoarsely.</p>
<p>“And if it wasn’t?” she challenged him. There was
mockery now in her eyes, and her figure had relaxed.</p>
<p>“You affirm it isn’t?”</p>
<p>“I said <em>if</em> it wasn’t?”</p>
<p>“I guess you win,” said Bob wearily. These extremes
of emotion were wearing on the system.</p>
<p>“You mean you wouldn’t, even if I had really, actually—?”</p>
<p>“I mean you certainly do know how to ‘even up’
with a chap. When he doesn’t dare dream of heaven,
you suddenly pretend to fling open the golden gates
and invite him to enter.”</p>
<p>“Like St. Peter,” said the girl.</p>
<p>“Ah, you <em>are</em> laughing,” said Bob bitterly, and
dropped his head. Her assurance was regal. “As if it
wasn’t hard enough, anyway, to get you out of my
darn-fool head,” he murmured reproachfully.</p>
<p>“Then you reject me?” said the girl, moving toward
the entrance. “Good! I mean, bad! So humiliating
to have been rejected! Good night, Mr. Bennett. No—it
isn’t necessary for you to accompany me to the
house. I really couldn’t think of troubling you after
your unkind refusal to—”</p>
<p>Bob groaned. “I say, there is always your aunt,
you know, who can ask me to vacate the—” he called
out.</p>
<p>“I’ll think about it,” said the lady. A faint perfume
was wafted past him and the vision vanished.
Bob sank down on the cold marble seat.</p>
<hr class='tb'/>
<p>He remained thus for some time, oblivious to the
world, when another car, en route from the village
to the house, purred past him, spitting viciously, however,
between purrs. Bob didn’t even look around.
Spit!—spit!—purr!—purr!—Its two lights were like
the eyes of some monster pussy-cat, on the war-path
for trouble. Spit!—it seemed in a horribly vicious
mood. More “spits” than “purrs,” now! Then the
car stopped, though it was some distance from the
house.</p>
<p>“Curse this old rattletrap!” said a man’s voice.</p>
<p>“Oh, I guess no one’ll pay any attention to it,” spoke
another occupant. “Besides, it was the only one to
be had at the station, and we had to get here quick.”</p>
<p>“You bet! The quicker, the better,” observed a
third man.</p>
<p>They all got out, not far from where Bob sat in the
dark gazing into a void, but he did not notice. Cars
might come, and cars might go, for all of him. He
was dimly aware of the sound of voices but he had no
interest in guests, newly-arrived or otherwise. One
of the trio paid the driver of the car and it purred
back, somewhat less viciously, from whence it came.</p>
<p>“Better separate when we get near the house and
approach it carefully,” said the first speaker in low
tense tones. “We’ve got to get hold of him without
anybody knowing it.”</p>
<p>“That’s right. Wouldn’t do to let <em>them</em>”—with
significant accent—“know what we’ve come for,” said
the second man. The trio were quite out of ear-shot
of Bob, by now.</p>
<p>“Hope it’ll turn out all right,” spoke the third
anxiously. “Why, in heaven’s name, didn’t we think
of this in the first place?”</p>
<p>“Can’t think of every contingency!” answered the
first speaker viciously. “Our plan now is to get hold
of one of the servants. A nice fat tip, and then—Come
on! No time to waste!”</p>
<p>As they made their way up the driveway to the
house Bob looked drearily around. His eyes noted
and mechanically followed the trio of dark forms.
He saw them stop near the house; then he observed
one approach a side window and peer in. A moment
later another approached another window and peered
in.</p>
<p>“That’s funny!” thought Bob, without any particular
emotion. At the same time, he recalled that a
band of burglars had been going about, looting country-houses.
Perhaps these fellows were after a few
hundred thousand dollars’ worth of jewels? There
might be half a million dollars’ worth of jewelry
sprinkled about among Mrs. Ralston’s guests. But
what did it matter? The presence of these intruders
seemed too trifling a matter to think about now, and
Bob sank into another reverie.</p>
<p>How long he remained thus, he did not know. The
laughter and talk of a number of guests, coming out
the front way (end of a “trot,” probably) aroused
him and Bob got up.</p>
<p>As he did so, he fancied he saw again the three
men he had noticed, then forgotten, slip around toward
the back of the house. Throughout the gardens,
the moonlight made clear spots on the ground where
the bright rays sifted through the foliage or shone
down between the trees, and they had to skip across
one of these bright places to get around somewhere
behind the big mansion. Undoubtedly, the appearance
from the house of the guests who wanted to cool off
had startled the intruders and inspired a desire to
make themselves less conspicuous for the time being.
Bob entertained a vague impression that the conduct of
the trio was rather crude and amateurish, though that
didn’t worry him. He didn’t care whether they were
full-fledged yeggmen of the smoothest class, or only
bungling artists, a discredit to their profession. He
dismissed consideration of them as quickly again as
he had done before.</p>
<p>A yawn escaped his lips, and it rather surprised
him that a broken-hearted man could yawn. He
looked at his watch, holding it in the moonlight, and
saw that it was late enough now so that he could retire
if he wished, without violating, to any great degree,
that even-tenor-of-his-way clause. Accordingly
Bob got up and walked toward the house. A side door
was open and he went in that way and up to his room.
He was glad he didn’t encounter any one—that is,
any one he had to speak to. The monocle-man drifted
by him somewhere, but Bob didn’t have to pay much
attention to him. He could imagine the superior way
in which the Britisher had informed Miss Gerald that
he found him (Bob) an “interesting young man.”
The monocle-man and the bishop seemed to agree on
that point.</p>
<p>Undressing hastily, Bob flung himself into bed. He
had gone through so much he was tired and scarcely
had he touched the sheets when the welcoming arms
of Morpheus claimed him. His sleep was sound—very
sound! In fact, it was so sound that something
occurred and he didn’t know it. It occurred again—several
times—and still he did not know it. Another
interval!—a long one! Bob yet slept the sleep of the
overwrought. His fagged brain was trying to readjust
itself. He could have slept right through to the dawn,
but this was not to be. Long before the glowing god
made its appearance in the east, Bob was rudely
yanked from the arms of Morpheus.</p>
<h1 id='t3480'>CHAPTER IX—ANOTHER SURPRISE</h1>
<p>Three men were in his room and Bob found
himself sitting up in bed and blinking at them.
The lights they had turned on seemed rather bright.</p>
<p>“Hello!” said Bob.</p>
<p>“Hello yourself!” said the commodore in a low but
nasty manner. “And not so loud!”</p>
<p>“Some sleeper, you are!” spoke Dickie in a savage
whisper.</p>
<p>“Believe he heard, all right!” came Clarence’s
hushed, unamiable tones. “Perverse beast, and pretended
not to!”</p>
<p>Bob hugged his knees with his arms. “You’ve
torn your pants,” he observed to the commodore.</p>
<p>“Never you mind <em>that</em>” as guardedly, though no
more pleasantly than before.</p>
<p>“Oh, all right,” said Bob meekly. He didn’t ask
any questions, nor did he exhibit any curiosity. There
couldn’t anything happen now that would make matters
much worse. But in that, he was “reckoning
without his host.”</p>
<p>“Got in the window, of course,” he observed in a
low unconcerned tone, as if their coming and being
there after midnight was the most natural occurrence
in the world. “Not so hard to get in, with that
balcony out there. All you had to do was to ‘shin up’
and then there’s that trellis to help. Good strong
trellis, too. Regular Jacob’s ladder! Easiest thing
for burglars! Thought you <em>were</em> burglars,” he added
contemplatively.</p>
<p>“You mean you saw us?” snapped the commodore,
almost forgetting his caution. His expression matched
his tone. He was no longer the jovial sailorman; he
wore now a regular Dick Deadeye look. To Bob’s
comprehensive glance he appeared like a fragment in
a revival of <em>Pinafore</em>.</p>
<p>“Oh, I didn’t know it was you,” said Bob.</p>
<p>“Where were you?”</p>
<p>“Summer-house.”</p>
<p>“Think of that,” murmured the commodore, disgustedly.
“Bird at hand, and we didn’t know it. Fool
of a bird had to hop away and make us all this trouble!”</p>
<p>“I told you I thought you were burglars,” observed
Bob patiently. He didn’t care how they abused
him or what names they called him.</p>
<p>That disagreeable look on Dan’s face was replaced
by a startled one. “Good gracious, man”—only that
wasn’t the expression he used—“I hope you haven’t
told any one you saw burglars prowling around? Nice
for us if you did!” As he spoke he gazed anxiously
toward the window, before which they had taken the
precaution to draw a heavy drape after entering.</p>
<p>“No, I didn’t tell a soul.”</p>
<p>“But—I don’t understand why you didn’t when
you thought—?”</p>
<p>“I ought to have spoken, I suppose,” said Bob with
a melancholy smile. “But it didn’t seem very important
and—I guess I forgot. These little jewel robberies
are getting to be such commonplace occurrences!”</p>
<p>The commodore stared at him. Then he touched
his forehead. “A lot of trouble you’ve made for us,”
he said, speaking in that low tense voice, while Clarence
and Dickie looked on in mad and reproachful
fashion. “Bribed a servant to tell you to slip out!
Told him to whisper that we were waiting in the garden
and simply had to see you at once! Didn’t you
hear him rap on your door?”</p>
<p>“No,” answered Bob sorrowfully.</p>
<p>“Heavens, man! believe you’d sleep through an
earthquake and cyclone combined! Servant came
back and told us he’d tapped on your door as loudly
as he dared. Was afraid he’d arouse the whole house
if he knocked louder. When you leave a ‘call’ at the
hotels, how do they manage? Break down the door
with an ax?”</p>
<p>Bob overlooked the sarcasm. The commodore
might have thumped him with an ax, at the moment,
and he wouldn’t have protested very hard. He murmured
a contrite apology.</p>
<p>“Get my telegram?” said the commodore.</p>
<p>“Yes. What <em>could</em> you have been thinking about
when you sent it? How could I leave when I had
to stay? Thought you must have been sailing pretty
close in the wind at the yacht club, when you dashed
it off! Could just feel your main-sail fluttering.”</p>
<p>The commodore swore softly but effectively. Clarence
and Dickie murmured something, too. Bob
hugged his knees closer. Being so unhappy himself,
he couldn’t but feel a dull sympathy when he saw any
one else put out.</p>
<p>“See here,” said the commodore, “what’s the situation?
We never dreamed, of course, that you would
come here. Have you been talking with Mrs. Dan
and Mrs. Clarence? Dickie’s been conjuring all kinds
of awful things you might have told them, if they
cornered you and you got that truth-telling stunt going.
Dickie’s got an imagination. Too confounded much
imagination!” Here the commodore wiped his brow.
That was quite a bad tear in his pants but he appeared
oblivious to it. “Maybe you would have
thought it a capital way to turn the tables on us poor
chaps?” he went on, stabbing Bob with a baleful look.
“Perhaps you came here on purpose?”</p>
<p>“No,” said Bob, “I couldn’t have done that, of
course, owing to the conditions.” And he related what
had happened to bring him there.</p>
<p>Dan groaned. “Why, it was we, ourselves, who
steered him right up against her at the Waldorf. It
was we who got him asked down here. I suppose
you’ve been chuckling ever since you came?” Turning
on Bob, with a correct imitation of Mr. Deadeye,
at his grouchiest moment.</p>
<p>“No,” said Bob, speaking to immeasurable distance,
“I haven’t done any chuckling since I came here. Nary
a chuckle!”</p>
<p>“Let’s get down to brass tacks,” interrupted Dickie,
“and learn if our worst apprehensions are realized.
There’s a girl down here I think a lot of and I’d like
to know if, by any chance, any conversation you may
have had with her turned on me. I allude to Miss
Dolly—”</p>
<p>“Hold on,” said the commodore. “That’s not very
important. Suppose she should have found out a few
things about you? You aren’t married. It’s different
in the case of married men, like Clarence and me
here. We’ll dismiss Miss Dolly, if you please, for the
present—”</p>
<p>“I really haven’t said anything to Miss Dolly about
you,” said Bob to Dickie. “Your name hasn’t been
mentioned between us.” He was glad he could reassure
one of them, at least. He wouldn’t have had
Dickie so sorrowful as himself for the world.</p>
<p>That young man looked immensely relieved. It
may be he experienced new hope of leading the temperamental
young thing to the altar, and incidentally
consummating a consolidation of competing chimneys,
conveniently contiguous. “Thanks, old chap,” he
said, and shook Bob’s hand heartily.</p>
<p>“But what about us?” whispered the commodore
sibilantly. “Have you talked with Mrs. Clarence or
Mrs. Dan to any great extent?”</p>
<p>“I haven’t had hardly a word with Mrs. Clarence,”
answered Bob, whereupon Clarence began to “throw
out his chest,” the way Dickie had done.</p>
<p>The commodore shifted uneasily, seeming to find
difficulty in continuing the conversation. He moved
back and forth once or twice, but realizing he was
making a slight noise, stood still again, and looked
down at Bob.</p>
<p>“Talk much with Mrs. Dan?” he at length asked
nervously.</p>
<p>“I did have a little conversation with Mrs. Dan,”
Bob was forced to reply. “Or, I should say, to be
strictly truthful, rather a long conversation. You see,
I took her in to dinner.”</p>
<p>The commodore showed signs of weakness. He
seemed to have very indecisive legs all of a sudden.
“Talk about me?” he managed to ejaculate.</p>
<p>“Some. I’m not certain just how much.”</p>
<p>“What—what was said?”</p>
<p>“I can’t remember all. It’s very confused. I’ve
had a lot of conversations, you see, and most of them
awfully unpleasant. I remember, though, that Mrs.
Dan impressed me as a very broad-minded lady. Said
she had lived in Paris, and was not a bit jealous.”</p>
<p>“What!” Dan was breathing hard.</p>
<p>“Said she always wanted you to have the best kind
of a time.”</p>
<p>“Did she say that?” asked the commodore. “And
you believed it? Go on.” In a choked voice. “Did
you tell her about that cabaret evening?”</p>
<p>“I believe it was mentioned, incidentally.”</p>
<p>“Say <em>I</em> was there?” put in Clarence quickly. He
was losing that “chestiness.”</p>
<p>“I rather think I did. I—what is that?” Bob
looked toward the window. There was a sound below
at the foot of the balcony. Some one turned out the
light in the room and Bob strode to the window and
looked out. “It’s a dog,” he said. “He’s snuffing
around at the foot.”</p>
<p>“He’s doing more than snuffing,” observed the commodore
apprehensively, as at that moment a bark
smote the air. They stood motionless and silent. The
dog stopped barking, but went on snuffing. Maybe it
would go away after a moment, and they waited.
Dickie and the commodore had thrashed out that
question of dogs. With so many guests around, they
had figured that, of course, they would be dog-safe.
Didn’t they look like guests? How could a dog tell
the difference between them and a guest? It is true,
they hadn’t been expecting so much trouble as they
had been put to, to find Bob. They had, in that little
balcony-climbing feat, rather exceeded what they had
expected to be called on to do. In their impatience,
they had acted somewhat impetuously, but it had
looked just as easy, after the servant had pointed out
the room and told them Bob was in, as certain sounds
from his bed indubitably indicated.</p>
<p>They couldn’t very well enter the house as self-invited
guests, though they, of course, would have been
made welcome. They couldn’t very well say they had
all changed their minds about those original invitations
which had naturally included husbands as well
as wives. After all three had declined to come on
account of business, it would certainly look like collusion,
if all three found they hadn’t had urgent business,
at all, in town. If anything untoward or disastrous
had happened in the conversational line, with
Bob as the Demon God, Truth, their sudden entrance
upon the stage of festivities, would seem to partake of
inner perturbation; it might even appear to be a
united and concentrated case of triple guilty conscience.
This, obviously, must be avoided at any cost. How
they had heard Bob was here at the Ralston house,
matters not. Naturally they had kept tab on his
movements, where he went and what he did being
of some moment to them.</p>
<p>The dog barked again. Thereupon, a window
opened and they knew that some one had been aroused.</p>
<p>“He’s looking out. It’s the monocle-chap,” whispered
Bob.</p>
<p>“Who’s he?”</p>
<p>“One of Mrs. Ralston’s importations. Belonged to
that Anglo-English colony when she did that little
emigration act in dear old London.”</p>
<p>“Hang it, we’ve got to get out,” whispered the commodore
nervously. No matter what had been said;
no matter what the Demon God of Truth had done,
it was incumbent on them not to remain longer, with
that dog looking up toward Bob’s window and making
that spasmodic racket. Some one might get up and
go out and see footprints, or a disturbed trellis. The
commodore forgot a certain desperate business proposition,
apropos of that confounded wager, he had come
to put to Bob. That infernal dog got on his nerves
and put that other matter, which would settle this
truth-telling stunt at once, right out of his mind.</p>
<p>It was all very well, however, to say they “had to
get out,” but it was another matter to tell how they
were going to do it. They couldn’t descend the way
they had come, and meet doggie. Bob arose to the
occasion.</p>
<p>“I can let you into the hall and show you downstairs,
to that side door on the other side of the house.
You can take one of my golf sticks, just as a safeguard,
but I think you’ll be able to circumvent the
jolly little barker without being obliged to use it.”</p>
<p>“What kind of a dog is it?” whispered the commodore
who had a pronounced aversion to canines.</p>
<p>“Looked like a smallish dog. Might be a bull.”</p>
<p>“Better give us each a club,” suggested Clarence
in a weak voice.</p>
<p>Which Bob did. The dog renewed the vocal performance,
and— “Hurry,” whispered the commodore.
“Find means to communicate with you to-morrow,
Mr. Bennett.” Bob didn’t resent the formality
of this designation, which implied to what depths he
had fallen in good old Dan’s estimation. “Can we get
down-stairs without any one hearing us?”</p>
<p>Bob thought they could. Anyhow, they would have
to try, so he opened the door softly and led the way.
Fortunately, the house was solidly built and not
creaky. They attained down-stairs safely, and at last
reached the side door without causing any disturbance.
Bob unfastened the door, the key turned noiselessly
and they looked out. There was no sign of any
living thing on lawn or garden on this side of the
house.</p>
<p>“Out you go quickly,” murmured Bob, glancing apprehensively
over his shoulder. His position was not
a particularly agreeable one. Suppose one of the
servants, on an investigating tour as to the cause of
doggie’s perturbation, should chance upon him (Bob)
showing three men out of the house in that secret manner
at this time of night?</p>
<p>But before disappearing into the night, the commodore
took time to whisper: “Was Gee-gee’s name mentioned?”</p>
<p>“I fear so,” said Bob sadly.</p>
<p>The commodore wasted another second or two to
tell Bob fiercely what he thought of him and how
they would “fix” him on the morrow, after which he
sprang out and darted away like a rabbit.</p>
<p>Bob wanted to call out that they were welcome to
“fix” him, but he was afraid that others beside Dan
might hear him, so he closed and locked the door carefully
and stood there alone in the great hall, in his
dressing-gown. Then he sat down in a dark corner
and listened. Better wait until all was quiet, he told
himself, before retracing his steps to his room. The
dog seemed to have stopped barking altogether now
and soon any persons it might have awakened would
be asleep again. His trio of visitors must be well on
their way to the village by this time, he thought. He
was sorry the commodore seemed to feel so bad. And
Clarence?—poor Clarence! That last look of his
haunted Bob. Anyhow, he was pleased Dickie had,
so far, escaped his (Bob’s) devastating touch.</p>
<p>How long he sat there he did not know. Probably
only a few moments. A big clock ticked near by,
which was the only sound now to be heard. Suddenly it
occurred to him that he had better return to his room,
and wearily he arose. Up-stairs it seemed darker than
it had been when he had left his room. He had the dim
lights in the great hall below to guide him then. Now
it was a little more difficult. However, after traversing
without mishap a few gloomy corridors—he realized
what a big house it really was—he reached, at
last, his room near the end of one of the upper halls
and entered.</p>
<p>He had a vague idea he had left his door partly
ajar, but he wasn’t sure; probably he hadn’t, for it
was now closed; or maybe a draft of air had closed
it. Groping his way in the dark for his bed, he ran
against a chair. This ruffled his temper somewhat as
the sharp edge had come in contact with that sensitive
part of the anatomy, known as the shin-bone. He
felt for his bed, but it wasn’t there where it ought to
be. He must have got turned around coming in. His
fingers ran over a dresser. Some of the articles on
it seemed strange to him. He thought he heard a
rustle and stood still, with senses alert, experiencing
a regular burglar-feeling at the moment. He hadn’t
become so ossified to emotion as he had supposed. But
everything was now as silent as the grave. Again his
hand swept out, to learn where he was, and again his
fingers swept over the dresser. What were all those
confounded things? He didn’t know he had left so
much loose junk lying around. And where was that
confounded switch-button?</p>
<p>At that moment some one else found it, for the
room became suddenly flooded with light. Bob
started back, and as he did so, something fell from
the dresser to the floor. He stared toward the bed in
amazement and horror. Some one, with the clothes
drawn up about her, was sitting up. Bob wasn’t the
only one who had a surprise that night. The temperamental,
little dark thing was treated to one, too.
Above the white counterpane, she stared at Bob.</p>
<h1 id='t3890'>CHAPTER X—INTO BONDAGE</h1>
<p>She continued to stare for some moments, while
he stood frozen to the spot. Then the young
lady’s face changed. Fear, startled wonder, gave way
to an expression of growing comprehension and into
her eyes came such an excited look.</p>
<p>“You!” said Miss Dolly in a thrilling whisper. And
then—“Pick it up, please.”</p>
<p>Instead of picking anything up—he didn’t know
what—Bob was about to rush for the door, when—
“Stop! Or I’ll scream,” exclaimed Miss Dolly. “I’ll
scream so loud I’ll wake every one in the house.”</p>
<p>Bob stopped. In his eyes was an agony of contrition
and shame. Miss Dolly, however, seemed quite
self-possessed. She might have been frightened at
first, but she was no longer that. Her temperamental,
somewhat childish face wore a thrill of pleasurable
anticipation. “Now pick it up,” she repeated.</p>
<p>“What?” stammered Bob in a shrinking voice.</p>
<p>“The brooch, to be sure. Didn’t you drop it?”</p>
<p>“I?” said Bob, drawing his dressing-gown closer
about him. They were speaking in stage whispers.</p>
<p>“Of course. Wasn’t it what you came for?”</p>
<p>“Came for? Great heavens!—Do you think?—”</p>
<p>“Think?” said Miss Dolly. “I know.”</p>
<p>Bob looked at her. Her face appeared elf-like, uncannily
wise. But for all her outward calm, her eyes
were great big, excited eyes. His horrified glance
turned quickly from them to regard a gleaming diamond
and pearl brooch on the rug. “Jumping Je-hoshaphat!
You don’t think I’m—”</p>
<p>“One of those thrilling society-highwaymen, or social
buccaneers?” said Miss Dolly. “Of course, and
I’m so glad it happened like this. I wouldn’t have
missed it for the world. Really, I’ve always wanted
to meet one of those popular heroes. And now to
think my dream has come true! It’s just like a play,
isn’t it?”</p>
<p>“It is not,” replied Bob savagely. This was too
much. It was just about the last straw. “I—” Then he
stopped. Suppose any one should hear him? Miss
Dolly’s temperamental and comprehensive eyes read
his thought.</p>
<p>“I don’t think there’s any danger,” she purred
soothingly. “You see there’s a bathroom on one side
of the room and a brick wall on the other. I wouldn’t
be surprised if all the rooms are separated by brick
partitions,” she confided to him. “Mrs. Ralston likes
everything perfect—sound-proof, fire-proof, and all
that.”</p>
<p>“See here,” said Bob. “I was just wandering
around—couldn’t sleep—and—and I came in here,
quite by mistake. Thought it was my own room!”
With some vehemence.</p>
<p>Miss Dolly shook her head reprovingly, and her
temperamental hair flowed all about her over the white
counterpane. She knew it must look very becoming,
it was such wonderful hair—that is, for dark hair.
Bob preferred light. Not that he was thinking of
hair, now! “Can’t you do better than that?” asked the
temperamental young thing.</p>
<p>“Better than what?” queried Bob ill-naturedly. He
was beginning to feel real snappy.</p>
<p>“Invent a better whopper, I mean?”</p>
<p>“It isn’t a whopper, and—and I positively refuse to
stay here any longer. Positively!”</p>
<p>“Oh, no; not positively,” said Miss Dolly, nodding
a wise young head. “You’re going to stay, unless—you
know the alternative. Since I’m destined to be a
heroine, I want a regular play-scene. I don’t want my
part cut down to nothing. Don’t you love thief-plays,
Mr. Bennett? It’s such fun to see people running
around, not knowing who <em>is</em> the thief. I’m sure I
feel quite privileged, in this instance.”</p>
<p>Bob growled beneath his breath. He was handsome
enough certainly for a matinee hero. He was tall
and lithe and had such clean-cut features. The temperamental
young thing regarded him with thrilling
approval. He entirely realized her ideal of a social
burglar. It seemed almost too good to be true.</p>
<p>“I knew you were different from other men,” she
said. “Something told me from the very first; perhaps
it was the way you tangoed. I expected you would
ask me to trot, but you didn’t.” Reprovingly. “Suppose
you were otherwise engaged?” Glancing toward
the brooch.</p>
<p>“Not the way you think!” said Bob gloomily, looking
more striking than ever in that melancholy pose.
It seemed to harmonize with a crime-stained career.</p>
<p>“Of course,” murmured Dolly, “it was you who got
Mrs. Templeton Blenfield’s wonderful emeralds?”</p>
<p>“It was not,” answered Bob curtly.</p>
<p>“You were at that costume ball where she lost
them?”</p>
<p>“Suppose I was?” he snapped. Yes, snapped! There
is a limit to human endurance.</p>
<p>“And you were at Mrs. Benton Briscoe’s when a
tiara mysteriously disappeared?”</p>
<p>“Well, I’m hanged!” said Bob, staring at her.</p>
<p>“Oh, I hope not—that is, I hope you won’t be, some
day,” answered Dolly. “Are you going to ‘fess up?’
You’d better. Maybe I won’t betray you—yet.
Maybe I won’t at all, if you’re real nice.”</p>
<p>“Oh!” said Bob. Whereupon she smiled at him
sweetly, just as if to say it was nice and exciting to
have a great, big, bold (and wildly handsome)
society-highwayman in her power. Why, she could send him
to jail, if she wanted to. She had but to lift a little
finger and he would have to jump. The consciousness
of guilty knowledge and power she possessed made
her glow all over. She didn’t really know though, yet,
whether she would be kind or severe.</p>
<p>“Do you operate alone, or with accomplices?” she
asked, after a few moments’ pleasurable anticipations.</p>
<p>“I beg pardon?” Bob was again gazing uneasily toward
the door.</p>
<p>“Got any pals?” She tried to talk the way they do
in the thief-books.</p>
<p>“No, I haven’t,” snapped Bob. That truth pact
made it necessary to answer the most silly questions.</p>
<p>“Well, I didn’t know but you had,” murmured the
temperamental young thing. “I heard a dog barking
and that made me think you might have them. You’re
sure you didn’t let anybody into the house?”</p>
<p>“I didn’t.”</p>
<p>Miss Dolly snuggled herself together more cozily.
She seemed about to ask some more questions. Perhaps
she would want to know if he had let anybody
out, and then he would have to tell her—</p>
<p>“Look here,” said Bob desperately. “Maybe it
hasn’t occurred to you, but—this—this isn’t exactly
proper. Me here, like this, and you—”</p>
<p>“Oh, I’m not afraid,” answered Miss Dolly with
wonderful assurance. “I can quite take care of myself.”</p>
<p>“But—but—” more desperately—“if I should be
discovered?—Can’t you see, for your own sake—?”</p>
<p>“My own sake?” The big innocent eyes opened
wider. “In that case, of course, I’d tell them the
truth.”</p>
<p>“The truth!” How he hated the word! “You mean
that I—?” Glancing toward the brooch.</p>
<p>“Of course!” Tranquilly.</p>
<p>Bob tried to consider. He could see what would
happen to him, if they were interrupted. It certainly
was a most preposterous conversation, anyhow. Besides,
it wasn’t the place or the time for a conversation
of any kind. He had just about made up his mind
that he would go, whether she screamed or not, and
take the consequences, however disagreeable they
might be, when—</p>
<p>“Well, trot along,” said Miss Dolly graciously. “I
suppose you’ve got a lot of work to do to-night and
it’s rather unkind to detain you. Only pick up the
brooch before you go.” He obeyed. “Now put it on
the dresser and leave it there. Hard to do that, isn’t
it?”</p>
<p>“No, it isn’t.” Savagely.</p>
<p>“Well, you can go now. By the way, Mrs. Vanderpool
has a big bronze-colored diamond surrounded by
wonderful pink pearls. It’s an antique and—would
adorn a connoisseur’s collection.”</p>
<p>“But I tell you I am not—”</p>
<p>“My! How stupid, to keep on saying that! But,
of course, you must really be very clever. Society-highwaymen
always are. Good night. So glad I was
thinking of something else and forgot to lock the
door!”</p>
<p>Bob went to the door and she considerately waited
until he had reached it; then she put out a hand and
pushed a convenient button which shut off the light.
Bob opened the door but closed it quickly again. He
fancied he saw some one out there in the hall, a shadowy
form in the distance, but was not absolutely sure.</p>
<p>“Aren’t you gone?” said the temperamental young
thing.</p>
<p>“S-sh!” said Bob.</p>
<p>For some moments there was silence, thrilling
enough, even for her. Then Bob gently opened the
door once more, though very slightly, and peered out
of the tiniest crack, but he failed to see any one now,
so concluded he must have been mistaken. The
shadows were most deceptive. Anyhow, there was
more danger in staying than in going, so he slid out
and closed the door. At the same moment he heard
a very faint click. It seemed to come from the other
side of the hall. He didn’t like that, he told himself,
and waited to make sure no one was about. The ensuing
silence reassured him somewhat; and the “click,”
he argued, might have come from the door he himself
had closed.</p>
<p>The temperamental young thing, holding her breath,
heard him now move softly but swiftly away. She
listened, nothing happened. Then she stretched her
young form luxuriously and pondered on the delirious
secret that was all hers. A secret that made Bob her
slave! Abjectly her slave! Like the servant of the
lamp! She could compel him to turn somersaults if
she wanted to.</p>
<p>Bob awoke with a slight headache, which, however,
didn’t surprise him any. He only wondered his head
didn’t ache more. People came down to breakfast
almost any time, and sometimes they didn’t come down
at all but sipped coffee in their rooms, continental-fashion.
It was late when Bob got up, so a goodly
number of the guests—the exceptions including Mrs.
Dan and Mrs. Clarence—were down by the time he
sauntered into the big sun-room, where breakfast was
served to all with American appetites.</p>
<p>The temperamental little thing managed accidentally
(?) to encounter him at the doorway before he got
into the room with the others. He shivered slightly
when he saw her, though she looked most attractive
in her rather bizarre way. Bob gazed beyond her,
however, to a vision in the window. “Vision!” That
just described what Miss Gwendoline looked like, with
the sunlight on her and making an aureole of her
glorious fair hair. Of course one could put an adjective
or two, before the “vision”—such as “beautiful,”
or something even stronger—without being accused
of extravagance.</p>
<p>The little dark thing, uttering some platitude, followed
Bob’s look, but she didn’t appear jealous. She
hadn’t quite decided how much latitude to give Bob.
That young gentleman noticed that the hammer-thrower,
looking like one of those stalwart, masculine
tea-passers in an English novel, was not far from
Miss Gwendoline. His big fingers could apparently
handle delicate china as well as mighty iron balls or
sledges. He comported himself as if his college education
had included a course at Tuller’s in Oxford
Street, in London, where six-foot guardsmen are
taught to maneuver among spindle-legged tables and to
perform almost impossible feats without damage to
crockery.</p>
<p>Miss Dolly now maneuvered so as to draw Bob aside
in the hall to have a word or two before he got to bacon
and eggs. What she said didn’t improve his appetite.</p>
<p>“I’m so disappointed in you,” she began in a low
voice.</p>
<p>He asked why, though not because he really cared
to know.</p>
<p>“After that hint of mine!” she explained reproachfully.
“About Mrs. Vanderpool’s bronze diamond, I
mean!”</p>
<p>“I fear I do not understand you,” said Bob coldly.</p>
<p>She bent nearer. “Of course I thought it would
disappear,” she murmured. “I expected you to execute
one of those clever coups, and so I went purposely
to Mrs. Vanderpool’s room on some pretext this morning
to learn if it was gone. But it wasn’t. I cleverly
led the conversation up to it and she showed it to me.”</p>
<p>“Great Scott!” he exclaimed. “Did you think she
wouldn’t have it to show you? That it had found
its way to my pockets?”</p>
<p>“Of course,” she answered. “And you <em>are</em> quite
sure you haven’t it, after all?” she asked suspiciously.</p>
<p>“How could I, when you saw—”</p>
<p>“Oh, you might have substituted a counterfeit
brooch just like it for—”</p>
<p>Bob groaned. “You certainly have absorbed those
plays,” he remarked.</p>
<p>“I expected a whole lot of things would be gone,”
she went on, “and, apparently,” with disappointment,
“no one has missed anything. It’s quite tame. Did
you get discouraged because you failed to land the
‘loot’—is that the word?—in my case? And did you
then just go prosaically to bed?”</p>
<p>“I certainly went to bed, though there was nothing
prosaic about the procedure.”</p>
<p>“And yet what a dull night it must have been for
you!”</p>
<p>“I shouldn’t call it that.”</p>
<p>“No?” She shifted the conversation. “Who do
you suppose has come? Dickie Donnelly. Said he
had arrived in town on some business and took advantage
of the opportunity to make a little call on me.
Incidentally, he seems interested in you. Said he
would make it a point to see you after you got down.
He’s out on the veranda smoking now, I guess. He
wanted to talk to me but I made an excuse to shoo him
away. He isn’t half so exciting as you are, you know.
I’m quite positive now I couldn’t marry him and annex
his old chimneys to ours, for all the world. Chimneys
are such commonplace means to a livelihood, Mr.
Bennett, don’t you think? They are so ugly and dependable.
Not at all romantic and precarious! They
just smoke and you get richer. There isn’t a single
thrill in a whole forest of chimneys. But I mustn’t
really keep you from your breakfast any longer,” she
added with sudden sedulousness. “I’ve quite planned
what we’re going to do to-day.”</p>
<p>“You have?” With a slight accent on the first word.</p>
<p>“Yes,” she assured him quietly. “So run along
now.”</p>
<p>The slave, glad to get away, started to obey, when—“One
moment!” said Miss Dolly as if seized with an
afterthought. “Dickie asked about you so particularly
that it occurred to me that— Well, do you think he
harbors any suspicions?”</p>
<p>“Suspicions?”</p>
<p>“Yes; do you imagine he, too, by any chance, may
have guessed—you know?” And Dolly again drew
closer, her eyes beaming with new excitement.</p>
<p>Bob looked disagreeable, but he had to reply. “I’m
sure he doesn’t think what you do,” he answered ill-humoredly.</p>
<p>Dolly looked relieved, but still slightly dubious. She
didn’t appear to notice that lack of appreciation in
Bob’s manner for her interest in his welfare. “Well,
you’d better see him,” she said in the tone of one who
had already established herself to the post of secret
adviser. “He’s bent on an interview with you. Says
it’s business. And speaking about business, what business
could he possibly have in that dinky little town?
Unless he wanted to buy the whole village! His conduct
is, to say the least, slightly mysterious. Dickie
may prove a factor to be reckoned with.”</p>
<p>“That’s true enough,” assented Bob, and went in to
breakfast.</p>
<p>The temperamental little thing gazed after him approvingly;
she quite gloried in her big burglar. It
was so nice to know something no one else knew, to
be a little wiser than all the rest of the world, including
the police and the detective force! Bob must be
terribly resourceful and subtle, to have deceived them
all so thoroughly. He only seemed a little dense at
times, just to keep up the deception. It was a part of
the role. He wouldn’t even let her, who knew his
secret, see under the surface and she liked him all the
better for his reticence. It lent piquancy to the situation
and added zest to the game. Dickie’s manner had
certainly seemed to her unduly sober. He appeared
to have something on his mind, though of course he
was awfully eager and joyous about seeing her.</p>
<p>At the breakfast-table Bob only dallied with his hot
rolls and took but a few gulps of coffee. The monocle-man
who sat near by noticed that want of appetite.</p>
<p>“Don’t seem very keen for your feed this morning,”
he observed jocularly.</p>
<p>“No, not over-peckish,” answered Bob.</p>
<p>“Why not? You look—aw—fit enough!” Reaching
for one of those racks for unbuttered toast which
Mrs. Ralston had brought home with her from London.</p>
<p>“Headache, for one thing,” returned Bob. It was
the truth, or part of the truth. No one looked sympathetic,
however. In fact, with the exception of the
monocle-man (Mrs. Ralston hadn’t yet come down),
every one in there made it apparent he or she desired
as little as possible of Mr. Bennett’s society. Bob soon
got up, casting a last bitter glance at Miss Gerald who
seemed quite contented with her stalwart, honest-looking
hammer-thrower. And why not? His character,
Bob reflected, was unimpeachable. He looked so good
and honest and so utterly wholesome that Bob, who
himself was tainted with suspicion, wanted to get out
of his presence. So Bob went out to the porch, to
hunt up Dickie and ascertain what was the matter
with him?</p>
<p>It didn’t take Bob long to learn what was worrying
Dickie. He was carrying the weight of a new and tremendous
responsibility. He had now become an emissary,
a friend in need, to Clarence and the commodore,
who certainly needed one at this moment. It
seemed that Mrs. Clarence and Mrs. Dan had set
detectives searching for Gee-gee and Gid-up and they
had succeeded in locating one of the pair, partly by
a freckle and a turned-up nose. The detectives must
have worked fast. They were assisted by the fact that
foolish Clarence had kept up an innocent and Platonic
friendship with “Gee-gee’s” chum, after that momentous
evening when Bob had been along. Now when a
young man begins to hang around the vicinity of a
stage door in a big car, he is apt to make himself a
subject for remark and to become known, especially
to the door-keeper who takes a fatherly interest in his
Shetland herd. As Gid-up and Gee-gee were inseparable,
it was but a step to place one by the other.</p>
<p>Detectives, Dickie informed Bob, had already interviewed
the ladies. They may have offered them
money in exchange for information. Mrs. Dan was
very rich in her own name. She could outbid the
commodore. Gid-up might hesitate or refuse to supply
or manufacture information for filthy lucre, but
Gee-gee was known to be ambitious. She longed to
soar. And here was a means to that end. Quite a
legitimate and customary one!</p>
<p>“Why, that girl would do anything to get herself
talked about,” said Dickie sadly, thinking of Dan,
and incidentally, too, of Clarence. “She’d manufacture
information by the car-load. Out of a little,
teeny-weeny remnant of truth, she’d build a magnificent
divorce case. Think of the glorious publicity!
Why, Gee-gee and one of the manager-chaps would sit
up nights to see how many columns they could fill each
day in the press. They’d make poor old Dan out
worse than Nero. They’d picture him as a monster.
They’d give him claws. And Clarence would come
crawling after him like a slimy snake. Incidentally,
they’d throw in a few weeps for Gee-gee. And then
some more for Gid-up! Why, man, when I think of the
mischief you’ve done—”</p>
<p>“Me?” said Bob miserably, almost overwhelmed by
this pathetic picture Dickie had drawn. “But it wasn’t!
It was Truth.” Dickie snorted. “What do you want me
to do? Commit suicide? Annihilate truth? That would
be one way of doing it. I’m sure I shouldn’t much
mind. Shall I poison Truth or blow its brains out?
Or shall I take it down to the lake and jump in with
it? Do you think it has made <em>me</em> very happy?
What am I? What have I become? Where is my good name?”
He was thinking of what the temperamental little thing
considered him. “Say, do I look like a criminal?” he
demanded, confronting Dickie. The latter stared, then
shrugged. Of course, if Bob wanted to rave—? “Or
a crazy man? Do I look crazy?” he continued almost
fiercely. “Well, there are people in there,” indicating
the house, “who think I am.” Dickie started slightly
and looked thoughtful. “You ask the judge, or the doctor,
or—a lot of others. Ask Miss Gwendoline Gerald,”
he concluded bitterly.</p>
<p>Dickie shifted a leg. “It might not be a bad idea,”
he said in a peculiar tone, whose accent Bob didn’t
notice, however. For some moments the two young
men sat moodily and silently side by side.</p>
<p>“Where are Dan and Clarence now?” asked Bob in a
dull tone, after a while.</p>
<p>“Gone to New York. Hustled there early this
morning after some hurry-up messages gave an inkling
of what was going on. I’m to do my best at this end.
Keep my eyes on Mrs. Dan and Mrs. Clarence, and
incidentally, learn and do what I can.”</p>
<p>As he spoke Dickie tapped his leg with his cane; at
the same time he bestowed another of those peculiar
looks on Bob. Just then a young lady stepped from
the house and came toward them. She was in the
trimmest attire—for shooting or fishing—and looked
extraordinarily trim, herself. A footman followed
with two light rods and a basket.</p>
<p>“Come on,” she said lightly to Bob. “Might as
well get started. It’s almost noon.”</p>
<p>“Started?” he stammered, staring at her.</p>
<p>“Yes, on that fishing excursion we planned.”</p>
<p>“We?” he repeated in the same tone. And then— “All
right!” he said. It occurred to him, if he went off
somewhere alone, with the temperamental young thing,
he wouldn’t, at any rate, have to bob against a score
or so of other people throughout the day. Better one
than a crowd! “I’m ready,” he added, taking the rods
and small basket.</p>
<p>“But, I say—” Dickie had arisen. There was a
new look in his eyes—of disappointment, surprise—perhaps
apprehension, too! “I say—” he repeated,
looking darkly toward Bob.</p>
<p>The temperamental young thing threw him a smile.
“Sorry, Dickie, but a previous engagement.—You
know how it is!”</p>
<p>“I can imagine,” thought Dickie ominously, watching
them disappear. Then his glance shifted viciously
toward the house, and there was a look of stern determination
in his eyes. As he mingled with others of
the guests a few moments later, however, his expression
had become one of studied amiability. Dickie
was deep. His grievance now was as great as Dan’s
or Clarence’s.</p>
<h1 id='t4457'>CHAPTER XI—FISHING</h1>
<p>They had an afternoon of it, Bob and Dolly.
Bob made himself useful, if not agreeable. He
was a willing though not altogether cheerful slave. But
the girl did not appear to mind that. She had spirits
enough for both of them and ordered Bob around
royally. She was nice to him, but she wanted him to
know that he was her property, as much hers as if she
had bought him at one of those old human auction
sales. Only hers was a white slave!</p>
<p>She had the grandest time. She made him help
her across the stream on a number of unnecessary occasions,
holding the slave’s hand, so that she wouldn’t
slip on the slippery stones. And once she had him carry
her across. She had to, because there weren’t any
stones, slippery or otherwise, she could avail herself
of, at that particular spot. It is true she might have
gone on a little farther and found some slippery
stones that would have served her purpose, but she
pretended not to know about them. Besides, what is
the use of being a despot and having a private slave,
all to yourself, if you don’t use him and make him
work? Mr. Bennett wasn’t only a slave either, he
was a romantic hero, as well, and in the books, heroes
always carry the heroines across streams. Miss Dolly
experienced a real bookish feeling when Bob carried
her. He fully realized the popular ideal, he had such
strong arms. True, he didn’t breathe on her neck, or
in her ear, and he grasped her rather gingerly, but she
found no fault over that. Her great big hero was a
modest hero. But he was very manly and masculine,
too.</p>
<p>He had plunged right in the stream, shoes and all,
in spite of her suggestion that he had better take them
off. But what cared he for wet feet? Might cause
pneumonia, of course; but pneumonia had no terrors
for Bob! She smiled at his precipitancy, while secretly
approving of it. The act partook of a large
gallantry. It reminded her of Sir Walter Raleigh
and that cloak episode. Miss Dolly nestled very
cozily, en route, with a warm young arm flung carelessly
over a broad masculine shoulder and her eyes
were dreamy, the way heroines’ eyes are in the books.
She was not thinking of chimneys.</p>
<p>On the other side, she sat down, and imperiously—mistresses
of slaves are always imperious—bade him
take off her shoes. It was doubly exciting to vary the
role of heroine with that of capricious slave-mistress.
Of course, she might just as well have taken off her
shoes on the other side and walked over but she never
dreamed of doing that. After the slave had taken off
her shoes, she herself removed her stockings, while
the slave (seemingly cold and impassive as Angelo’s
marble Greek slave) looked away. Then she dabbled
her tiny white feet in the cold stream. She was thinking
of that Undine heroine. Dabbling her feet, also
made her feel bookish. Only in the books the heroes
(or slaves) gaze adoringly at said feet. Hers were
worth gazing at, but Bob didn’t seem to have eyes.
Never mind! She told herself she liked that cold
Anglo-Saxon phlegm (what an ugly word!) in a man.
She saw in it a foil to her own temperamental disposition.</p>
<p>Having dabbled briefly, she held out a tiny foot
and the slave dried it with his handkerchief, looking
very handsome as he knelt before her. Then she put
out the other and he repeated the operation. Then
she put on her shoes and stockings. Then she remembered
they had come ostensibly to fish and began
whipping the stream spasmodically, while he did
the same mechanically. They caught one or two
speckled beauties, or Bob did. She couldn’t land hers.
They always got tangled in something which she
thought very cute of them. She didn’t feel annoyed
at all when they got away, but just laughed as if it
were the best kind of a joke, while Bob looked at her
amazed. She called <em>that</em>“sport.”</p>
<p>Then she made him build a “cunning little fire”
on a rock and clean the fish and cook them and set
them before her. She graciously let him sit by her
side and partake of a few overdone titbits and a sandwich
or two they had brought in the basket. But
she also made him jump up every once in a while
to do something, finding plenty of pretexts to keep
him busy. In fact, she had never been more waited
upon in her life, which was just what she wanted.
Bob, however, didn’t complain, for the minutes and
hours went by and she asked no embarrassing questions.
She didn’t make herself disagreeable in that
respect, and as long as she didn’t, he didn’t mind helping
her over rocks, or toting her. At least, this was
a respite. His headache wasn’t quite so bad; the fresh
air seemed to have helped it.</p>
<p>As for her thinking him one of those high-class
society-burglars, or social buccaneers, it didn’t so much
matter to him, after all. He was getting rather accustomed
to the idea. Of course, she would be terribly
disappointed if she ever found out he wasn’t one,
but there didn’t seem much chance of his ever clearing
himself, in her mind, of that unjust suspicion. At
least, he reflected moodily, he was capable of making
one person in the world not positively miserable. Last
night when he had parted from Dickie, he had found
a small grain of the same kind of comfort, in the fact
the he (or truth) had not harmed Dickie. But to-day
Dickie had appeared saddened by Dan’s and Clarence’s
troubles. Then, too, Bob had been obliged to walk
off, right in front of Dickie’s eyes with the temperamental
young thing whom Dickie wanted to marry
the worst way. And here he (Bob) was helping her
over stones, “toting” frizzling trout for her, and performing
a hundred other little services which should,
by right, have been Dickie’s pleasure and privilege to
perform.</p>
<p>Bob murmured a few idle regrets about Dickie, but
Miss Dolly dismissed them—and Dickie—peremptorily.
She was sitting now, leaning against a tree
and the slave, by command, was lying at her feet.</p>
<p>“Did you know,” she said dreamily, “I am a new
woman?”</p>
<p>He didn’t know it. He never would have dreamed
it, and he told her so.</p>
<p>“Yes,” she observed, “I marched in the parade to
Washington. That is, I started, went a mile or two,
and then got tired. But I marched there, in principle,
don’t you see? I think women should throw off their
shackles. Don’t you?” Bob might have replied he
didn’t know that Miss Dolly ever had had any shackles
to throw off, but she didn’t give him time to reply.
“I read a book the other day wherein the women do
the proposing,” she went on. “It’s on an island and
the women are ‘superwomen.’ All women are ‘super’
nowadays.” She regarded him tentatively. Her
glance was appraising. “Do you know of any reason
why women should <em>not</em> do the proposing,
Mr. Bennett?”</p>
<p>“Can’t say that I do,” answered Bob gloomily, feeling
as if some one had suddenly laid a cold hand on
his breast, right over where the heart is. Her words
had caused his thoughts to fly back to another. She
might not be proposing to the hammer-thrower at
that moment in that “super” fashion, but the chances
were that the hammer-thrower was proposing to her.
He didn’t look like a chap that would delay matters.
He would strike while the iron was hot.</p>
<p>The temperamental young thing eyed Bob and then
she eyed a dreamy-looking cloud. She let the fingers
of one hand stray idly in Bob’s hair as he lay with his
head in the grass.</p>
<p>“It tries hard to curl, doesn’t it?” she remarked irrelevantly.</p>
<p>“What?” said Bob absently, his mind about two
miles and a half away.</p>
<p>“Your hair. You’ve got lovely hair.” Bob looked
disgusted. “It started to curl and then changed its
mind, didn’t it?” she giggled.</p>
<p>Bob muttered disagreeably.</p>
<p>“I suppose you were one of those curly-headed little
boys?” went on the temperamental young thing.</p>
<p>“I don’t know whether I was or not,” he snapped.
He was getting back into that snappy mood. Then it
struck him this might not be quite the truth, the whole
truth, and nothing but the truth, for he added sulkily;
“Maybe I was.”</p>
<p>“I can just see you,” said the temperamental young
thing in a far-off voice. “Nursie must have thought
you a darling.”</p>
<p>The slave again muttered ominously. He wished
the temperamental little thing would take her fingers
away. They trailed now idly over an ear.</p>
<p>“You’re tickling,” said Bob ill-naturedly.</p>
<p>She stopped trailing and patted instead—very
gently and carelessly—as if she were patting a big
Newfoundland dog which she owned all by herself.
That pat expressed a sense of ownership.</p>
<p>“I’m wondering,” she said, “whether it would make
things nicer, if I did propose and we became engaged?”</p>
<p>“Oh,” said Bob satirically, “you’re wondering that,
are you?”</p>
<p>“Yes.” More tentative pats.</p>
<p>“And what do you suppose I’d say?” he demanded.
He was feeling more and more grouchy all the time.
He didn’t want any of that “superwoman” business.
He had already had one proposal. What mockery!
A proposal! He heard again that other “Will you
marry me?” and looked once more, in fancy, into the
starry, enigmatical violet eyes. He experienced anew
that surging sensation in his veins. And he awoke
again to the hollow jest of those words! He felt, indeed,
a moderately vivid duplication of all his emotions
of the night before. The temperamental young
thing’s voice recalled him from the poignant recollections
of the painful past into the dreary and monotonous
present.</p>
<p>“Why, you actually blushed, just now,” she said accusingly.</p>
<p>“Did I?” growled Bob, looking grudgingly into
dark eyes where a moment before, in imagination,
there had been starry violet ones.</p>
<p>“Yes, you did. And”—her voice taking a tenderer
accent—“it was becoming, too.”</p>
<p>“Rush of blood to the head,” he retorted shortly.
“Comes from lying like this.”</p>
<p>“What would you say if I did?” she demanded, reverting
to that other topic. “Propose, I mean?
Would you accept? Would you take me—I mean,
shyly suffer me,” with a giggle, “to take you into my
arms?”</p>
<p>“Quit joshing!” growled Bob.</p>
<p>“Answer. Would you?”</p>
<p>“No.”</p>
<p>“No?” Bending over him more closely. For a
“super,” she was certainly wonderfully attractive in
her slim young way at that moment. Not many of the
inferior sex would have acted quite so stonily as Bob
acted. He didn’t show any more emotion when she
bent over than one of those prostrate stone Pharaohs,
or Rameses, which lie around with immovable features
on the sands of Egypt. “You see you couldn’t help it,”
the super-temperamental young thing assured him, confidentially.</p>
<p>“Ouch!” said Bob, for she was tickling again. He
wished she would keep those trailing fingers in her
lap. They felt like a fly perambulating his brow or
walking around his ear.</p>
<p>“You’d just have to accept me,” she added.</p>
<p>“Oh, you mean on account of that silly burglar
business?”</p>
<p>“Of course. You left two or three thumb-prints
in the room.”</p>
<p>“I did?” That <em>was</em> incriminating. No getting
around thumb-prints! He felt as if the temperamental
little thing was weaving a mesh around him. In addition
to being a “super,” she was a Lady of Shalott.</p>
<p>Dolly thrilled with a sense of her power. She could
play with poor Bob as a cat with a mouse; she could
let him go so far and then put out her claws and draw
him back.</p>
<p>“Besides, I found out you didn’t quite tell me the
truth about those accomplices of yours,” she went on
triumphantly. “You said there weren’t any, and when
I went out and looked around where the dog barked,
I found footprints. They led to the trellis, right up
into your room. The trellis, too, showed some person,
or persons, had climbed up, for some of the boughs
were broken. Deny now, if you can, you had visitors
last night,” she challenged him.</p>
<p>Bob didn’t deny; he lay there helpless.</p>
<p>“Of course,” she said with another giggle, “I might
let you say you’ll think it over. I might not press you
too hard at once for an answer. I don’t want you to
reply: ‘This is so sudden,’ or anything like that.” She
got up suddenly with a little delirious laugh. “But
I simply can’t wait. You look so handsome when
you’re cross. Besides, it will be so exciting to be engaged
to a—a—”</p>
<p>“Society-burglar—” grimly.</p>
<p>“That’s it. I’ve never been engaged to a burglar
before!”</p>
<p>“But you have been engaged?”</p>
<p>“Oh, yes. Lots of times. But not like this. This
feels as if it might lead—”</p>
<p>“To the altar?” Satirically.</p>
<p>“Yes.”</p>
<p>“But suppose I got caught?—that is, if I really enjoyed
the distinction of being a burglar which I am
not?”</p>
<p>“Then, of course, I never knew—you deceived me—poor
innocent!—as well as the rest of the world. And
there would be columns and columns in the papers.
And some people would pity me, but most people would
envy me. And I’d visit you in jail with a handkerchief
to my eyes and be snap-shotted that way. And I’d
sit in a dark corner in the court, looking pale and interesting.
And the lady reporters would interview me
and they’d publish my picture with yours—‘Handsome
Bob, the swell society yeggman. Member of one of
the oldest families, etc.’ And—and—”</p>
<p>“Great Scott!” cried Bob. She had that publicity-bee
worse than Gee-gee. In another moment she’d be
setting the day. “Shall we—ah!—retrace our steps?”</p>
<p>It was getting late. The hours had gone by somehow
and as she offered no objections, they “retraced.”
For some time now she was silent. Perhaps she was
imagining herself too happy for words. Once or twice
she cast a sidelong glance shyly at Bob. It was the
look of a capricious slave-owner metamorphosed,
through the power of love, into a yielding and dependent
young maiden. Bob was supposed to be the brutal
conqueror. Meanwhile that young man strode along
unheedingly. He didn’t mind any little branches or
bushes that happened to stand in his way and plowed
right through them. It would have been the same, if
he had met that historic bramble bush. A thousand
scratches, more or less, wouldn’t count.</p>
<p>“You can put your arm around me now,” she
observed, with another musical but detestable giggle,
as they passed through a grove, not very far from the
house. “It is quite customary here, you know.”</p>
<p>He didn’t know, but he obeyed. What else could he
do?</p>
<p>“Now say something.” Her voice had once more
that ownership accent.</p>
<p>“What do you want me to say?” None too graciously.</p>
<p>“The usual thing! Those three words that make
the world go around.”</p>
<p>“But I don’t.” Even a worm will turn.</p>
<p>“You will.” Softly.</p>
<p>“I won’t.”</p>
<p>“Oh, yes, you will.” More softly. Then with a sigh:
“This is the place. Under this oak, carved all over
with hearts and things. Do it.”</p>
<p>“What?” He looked down on lips red as cherries.</p>
<p>“Are you going to?”</p>
<p>“And if I don’t?” he challenged her.</p>
<p>“Finger-prints!” she said. “Footmarks!”</p>
<p>“Oh, well! Confound it.” And he did—the way a
bird pecks at a cherry.</p>
<p>She straightened with another giggle. “Our first!”
she said.</p>
<p>“Hope you’re satisfied,” he remarked grudgingly.</p>
<p>“It will do for a beginning. Oh, dear! some one
saw us!” He looked around with a start, his unresponsive
arm slipping from about a pliant waist.</p>
<p>“I don’t see any one.”</p>
<p>“He’s dodged behind a tree. I think it was Dickie.
And—yes, there are one or two other men. They—they
seem to be dodging, too.” Bob saw them now.
One, he was sure, was the commodore.</p>
<p>“Funny performance, isn’t it?” he said, with a
sickly smile.</p>
<p>“Perhaps—?” She looked at him with genuine awe
in the temperamental eyes. He read her thought;
she thought—believed they had “come for him.” She
appeared positively startled, and—yes, sedulous!
Maybe, she was discovering in herself a little bit of
that “really, truly” feeling.</p>
<p>“Oh!” she said. “They mustn’t—”</p>
<p>“Don’t you worry,” he reassured her. “I think I
can safely promise you they won’t do what you expect
them to.”</p>
<p>“You mean,” joyously, “you have a way to circumvent
them?” She was sure now he had; the aristocratic
burglars always have. He would probably have
a long and varied career before him yet.</p>
<p>“I mean just what I say. But I think they want to
talk with me? Indeed, I’m quite sure they do. They
are coming up now. Perhaps you’d better leave me to
deal with them.”</p>
<p>“You—you are sure they have no evidence to—?”</p>
<p>“Land me in jail? Positively. I assure you, on my
honor, you are the only living person who, by any
stretch of the imagination, could offer damaging testimony
against me, along that line.”</p>
<p>He spoke so confidently she felt it was the truth.
“I believe you,” she said. She wanted to say more,
befitting the thrill of the moment, but she had no time.
Dickie and two others were approaching. It might be
best if he met them alone. So she slipped away and
walked toward the house. It would be quite exciting
enough afterward, she told herself, to find out what
happened. It wasn’t until she got almost to the house,
that she remembered she ought to have asked Bob for
a ring. Of course, he would have a goodly supply of
them. Would it make her <em>particeps criminis</em> though,
if she wore one of his rings? Then she concluded it
wouldn’t, because she was innocent of intention. She
didn’t know. She wondered, also, if she should announce
her “engagement” right off, or wait a day or
two. She decided to wait a day or two. But she told
Miss Gwendoline Gerald what a lovely time she and
Mr. Bennett had had together, fishing. And Miss Gerald
smiled a cryptic smile.</p>
<p>Meanwhile Bob had met Dan and Dickie and Clarence.</p>
<h1 id='t4912'>CHAPTER XII—JUST ONE THING AFTER ANOTHER</h1>
<p>It was far from a pleasant meeting. Dickie looked
about as amiable as a wind or thunder demon, in
front of a Japanese temple. That oscillatory performance
beneath the “kissing-oak,” as the noble tree was
called, had been almost too much for Dickie. He
seemed to have trouble in articulating.</p>
<p>“You’re a nice one, aren’t you?” he managed at
length to say, and his tones were like the splutter of a
defective motor. “You ought to be given a leather
medal.”</p>
<p>“Could I help it?” said Bob wearily. And then because
he was too much of a gentleman to vouchsafe
information incriminating a lady: “Usual place! Customary
thing! Blame it on the oak! Ha! ha!” This
wasn’t evading the truth; it was simply facetiousness.
Might as well meet this trio of dodging brigands with
a smiling face! Dickie’s vocal motor failed to explode,
even spasmodically; that reply seemed to have
extinguished him. But the commodore awoke to
vivacity.</p>
<p>“Let us try to meet this situation calmly,” he said,
red as a turkey-cock. “But let us walk as we talk,”
taking Bob’s arm and leading that young man unresistingly
down a path to the driveway to the village. “I
shouldn’t by any chance want to encounter Mrs. Dan
just yet,” he explained. “So if you don’t mind, we’ll
get away from here, while I explain.”</p>
<p>Bob didn’t mind. He saw no guile in the commodore’s
manner or words. Nor did he observe how
Clarence looked at Dickie. The twilight shadows
were beginning to fall.</p>
<p>“Briefly,” went on the commodore, as he steered
them out of the woods, “our worst fears have been
realized. Negotiations with Gee-gee are in progress.
Divorce papers will probably follow.” Clarence on
the other side of Dickie made a sound. “All this is
your work.” The commodore seemed about to become
savage, but he restrained himself. “No use speaking
about that. Also, it is too late for us to call the
wager off and pay up. Mischief’s done now.”</p>
<p>“Why not make a clean breast of everything?” suggested
Bob. “Say it was a wager, and—”</p>
<p>“A truth-telling stunt? That <em>would</em> help a lot.”
Contemptuously.</p>
<p>Dickie muttered: “Bonehead!”</p>
<p>“I mean, you can say there wasn’t any harm,” said
Bob desperately. “That it was all open and innocent!”</p>
<p>“Much good my saying that would do!” snorted
Dan. “You don’t know Mrs. Dan.”</p>
<p>“Or Mrs. Clarence,” said Clarence weakly.</p>
<p>Bob hung his head.</p>
<p>“We’ve thought of one little expedient that may
help,” observed Dan, still speaking with difficulty.
“While such influences as we could summon are at
work on the New York end, we’ve got to square matters
here. We’ve got to account for your—your—” here
the commodore nearly choked—“extraordinary
revelations.”</p>
<p>“But how,” said Bob patiently, “can you ‘account’
for them? I suppose you mean to make me out a
liar?”</p>
<p>“Exactly,” from the commodore coolly.</p>
<p>“I don’t mind,” returned Bob wearily, “as long as
it will help you out and I’m not one. Only <em>I</em> can’t
say those things aren’t true.”</p>
<p>“You don’t have to,” said Dan succinctly. “There’s
an easier way than that. No one would believe you,
anyway, now.”</p>
<p>“That’s true.” Gloomily.</p>
<p>“All we need,” went on Dan, brightening a bit, “is
your cooperation.”</p>
<p>“What can I do?”</p>
<p>“You don’t do anything. We do what is to be done.
You just come along.”</p>
<p>“We take you into custody,” interposed Clarence.</p>
<p>“Lock you up!” exploded Dickie once more. “And
a good job.”</p>
<p>“Lock me up?” Bob gazed at them, bewildered.
Had the temperamental little thing “peached,” after
all? Impossible! And yet if she hadn’t, how could
Dan and Dickie and Clarence know he was a burglar—or
rather, that a combination of unlucky circumstances
made him seem one? Perhaps that kiss was a signal
for them to step forward and take him. History was
full of such kisses. And yet he would have sworn
she was not that kind.</p>
<p>“You’re to come along without making a fuss,”
said the commodore significantly.</p>
<p>“But I don’t want to come along. This is going too
far,” remonstrated Bob. “I’ve a decided objection to
being locked up as a burglar.”</p>
<p>“Burglar!” exclaimed Dan.</p>
<p>“Don’t know how you found out! Appearances may
be against me, but,” stopping in the road, “if you
want me to go along, you’ve got to make me.”</p>
<p>The trio looked at one another. “Maybe, he really
is—” suggested Dickie, touching his forehead.</p>
<p>“Too much truth!” said Clarence with a sneer.
“Feel half that way, myself!”</p>
<p>“Would be all the better for us, if it were really
so,” observed Dan. And to Bob: “You think that we
think you’re a burglar?”</p>
<p>“Don’t you? Didn’t you say something about locking
me up?”</p>
<p>“But not in a jail.”</p>
<p>Bob stared. “What then?”</p>
<p>“A sanatorium.”</p>
<p>“Sanatorium?”</p>
<p>“For the insane.”</p>
<p>“You mean—?”</p>
<p>“You’re crazy,” said Dan. “That’s the ticket.
Dickie found out, up at Mrs. Ralston’s.”</p>
<p>“Oh, Dickie did?” said Bob, looking at that young
gentleman with lowering brows.</p>
<p>“You bet I did,” returned Dickie. “I put in a good
day,” viciously, “while you were fishing.”</p>
<p>“Yes,” corroborated the commodore, “Dickie found
a dozen people who think you’re dottie on the crumpet,
all right.”</p>
<p>Bob folded his arms, still regarding Dickie. “You
know what I’ve a mind to do to you?”</p>
<p>“Hold on!” said Dan hastily. “This matter’s got
to be handled tactfully. We can’t, any one of us, give
way to our personal feelings, however much we may
want to. Let’s be businesslike. Eh, Clarence? Businesslike.”</p>
<p>“Sure,” said Clarence faintly.</p>
<p>But Dickie, standing behind the commodore and
Clarence, said something about tact being a waste of
time in some cases. He said it in such a sneering nasty
way that Bob breathed deep.</p>
<p>“I’ve simply got to spank that little rooster,” he
muttered.</p>
<p>But again the commodore smoothed things over.
“Shut up, Dickie,” he said angrily. “You’ll spoil all.
I’m sure Bob wants to help us out, if he can. He
knows it’s really up to him, to do so. Bob’s a good
sport.” It was an awful effort for the commodore
to appear nice and amiable, but he managed to, for the
moment. “You will help us out, won’t you?” he added,
placing velvety fingers on Bob’s arm.</p>
<p>But Bob with a vigorous swing shook off those fingers.
He didn’t intend being taken into custody. Dan
and the others might as well understand that, first as
last. The commodore’s voice grew more appealing.</p>
<p>“Don’t you see you’re being crazy will account for
everything?”</p>
<p>“Oh, will it?” In a still small voice.</p>
<p>“Miss Gwendoline asked me if you’d showed signs
before coming down here?” piped up Dickie. And
again Bob breathed deep. Then his thoughts floated
away. Dickie was too insignificant to bother with.</p>
<p>“Hallucinations!” observed the commodore briskly.
“Fits you to a T!”</p>
<p>Bob didn’t answer. He was trying to think
if <em>she</em>—Miss Gwendoline—hadn’t said
something about hallucinations?</p>
<p>“You simply imagined all those things you confided
to Mrs. Dan. You didn’t mean to tell what wasn’t so,
but you couldn’t help yourself. You really believed it
all, at the time. You are irresponsible.”</p>
<p>“Maybe you’ll tell me next there isn’t any Gee-gee,”
said Bob. “Also, that Miss Gid-up is but an empty
coinage of the brain?”</p>
<p>“No, we’ll do better than that. The existence of a
Gee-gee accounts, in part, for your condition. First
stage, Gee-gee on the brain; then, brain-storm! Gee-gee
is part of your obsession!”</p>
<p>“You talk, think and dream of Gee-gee,” interposed
Clarence. “We’ve got it all doped out. You are madly
jealous. You imagine every man is in love with her.
You even attribute to Dan here, ulterior motives.”</p>
<p>“I mentioned to Miss Gerald, privately, that a certain
very fascinating but nameless young show-girl
might be your trouble,” said Dickie.</p>
<p>Again Bob did a few deep-breathing exercises, and
again he managed to conquer himself.</p>
<p>“Don’t you see we’ve simply got to lock you up?”
said the commodore. “You’re a menace to the
community; you’re a happy home-breaker. You may do
something desperate.”</p>
<p>“I might,” said Bob, looking the commodore in the
eye.</p>
<p>Dan overlooked any covert meaning. “We take
your case in time,” he went on. “You go into an institution,
stay a week, or two—or shall we say, three,”
insinuatingly, “and you come out cured.”</p>
<p>“Wouldn’t that be nice?” said Bob. They were going
to put truth in a crazy-house. That’s what it
amounted to. “But how about Gid-up? Did I have
an obsession about her, too?”</p>
<p>“Oh, as Gee-gee’s chum she is part of the brainstorm
and that drags poor old Clarence in,—Clarence
who is as ignorant of the existence of Gid-up as I am
of Gee-gee.”</p>
<p>“And that’s the truth,” said Clarence stoutly.</p>
<p>Bob laughed. He couldn’t help it. Perhaps many
of the people in jails and crazy-houses were only poor
misguided mortals who had gone wrong looking for
truth. Maybe some of them had met with that other
kind of truth (Dan’s kind and Clarence’s kind) and
they hadn’t the proper vision to see it was the truth
(that is, the world’s truth).</p>
<p>“Got it fixed all right,” went on the commodore.
“Doc, up there at the house, has written a letter to the
head of an eminently respectable institution, for eminently
respectable private patients. It’s not far away
and the head is a friend of Doc’s. Dickie saw to the
details. It’s a good place. Kind gentle attendants;
nourishing food. Isn’t that what the Doc said, Dickie?”</p>
<p>“I guess the food won’t hurt <em>him</em>” said Dickie,
regarding Bob. Maybe, Dickie wouldn’t have minded if
Bob had had an attack, or two, of indigestion.</p>
<p>“Doc says they’re especially humane to the violent,”
continued the commodore, unmindful of Bob’s ominous
silence. It seemed as if Dan was talking to gain
time, for he looked around where the bushes cast dark
shadows, as if to locate some spot. “None of that
slugging or straight-jacket business! Doc talked it
over with the judge and some of the others. Judge
said he’d committed a lot of people who hadn’t acted
half as crazy as you have. You see Dickie had to take
him into his confidence a little bit and the Doc, too.
Doc diagnosed your breakdown as caused by drugs and
alcohol.”</p>
<p>“So you made me out a dipsomaniac?” observed
Bob.</p>
<p>“What else was there to do? Didn’t you bring it on
yourself?”</p>
<p>Dan now stopped, not far from a clump of bushes.
Down the road stood a stalled motor-car vaguely distinguishable
in the dusk. Its occupant, or occupants
had apparently gone to telephone for help.</p>
<p>“You bet I made you out a ‘dippy,’” said Dickie
with much satisfaction.</p>
<p>A white light shone from Bob’s eyes. Then he
shrugged his broad shoulders.</p>
<p>“Good night,” he said curtly and turned to go.</p>
<p>But at that instant the commodore emitted a low
whistle and two men sprang out of the bushes. At the
same moment the trio precipitated themselves, also, on
Bob. It was a large load. He “landed” one or two on
somebody and got one or two in return himself. Dickie
rather forgot himself in the excitement of the moment
and was unnecessarily forceful, considering the odds.
But Bob was big and husky and for a little while he
kept them all busy. His football training came in
handy. Numbers, however, finally prevailed, and
though he heaved and struggled, he had to go down.
Then they sat on him, distributing themselves variously
over his anatomy.</p>
<p>“Thought I was giving you that charming little chat,
just for the pleasure of your company, did you?”
panted the commodore, from somewhere about the upper
part of Bob? “Why, I was just leading you here.”</p>
<p>“And he came like a lamb!” said Clarence, holding
an arm.</p>
<p>“Or a big boob!” from Dickie, who had charge of
a leg.</p>
<p>Bob gave a kick and it caught Dickie. The little man
went bowling down the road like a ten-pin. But after
that, there wasn’t much kick left in Bob. They tied
him tight and bore him (or truth, trussed like a fowl),
to the car. Some of them got in to keep him company.
There wasn’t anything the matter with the car.
It could speed up to about sixty, or seventy, at a pinch.
It went “like sixty” now.</p>
<p>“If he tries to raise a hullabaloo, toot your horn,”
said the commodore, when he got his breath, to the
driver. “At the same time I’ll wave my hat and act
like a cut-up. Then they’ll only take us for a party of
fuzzled joy-riders.”</p>
<p>“I don’t think he’ll make much noise now,” shouted
Dickie significantly, from behind. “We’ll jolly well
see to that.”</p>
<p>“How long will it take you to make the bug-house?”
the commodore asked the man at the wheel.</p>
<p>“We should reach the private sanatorium in less than
an hour,” answered that individual.</p>
<h1 id='t5278'>CHAPTER XIII—AN ENFORCED REST CURE</h1>
<p>They kept him two days in the padded room on
Dickie’s recommendation, who made Bob out as
highly dangerous. “Powerful and vicious,” he described
him to the suave individual in charge of the
“sanatorium.” That particular apartment was somewhat
remote from the other rooms, so that any noises
made by the inmate of the former wouldn’t disturb the
others. Becoming more reconciled to the inevitable,
Bob found the quiet of the padded room rather soothing
to his shaken nerves. He didn’t have to talk to
hardly a soul. Only an attendant came around once
in a while to shove cautiously something edible at him,
but the attendant didn’t ask any questions and Bob
didn’t have to tell him any truths. It was a joyful
relief not to have to tell truths.</p>
<p>Bob’s eye was swollen and he had a few bruises,
but they didn’t count. He had observed with satisfaction
that Dickie’s lip had an abrasion and that one
of his front teeth seemed missing. Dickie would have
to wait until nature and art had repaired his appearance
before he could once more a-wooing go. Bob
didn’t want the temperamental young thing himself,
but he couldn’t conscientiously wish Dickie success in
that quarter, after the unnecessarily rough and unsportsmanlike
manner in which Dickie had comported
himself against him (Bob).</p>
<p>At first, it had occurred to Bob to take the attendant—and
through him, the manager of the institution—into
his confidence, but for two reasons he changed
his mind about doing so. The attendant would probably
receive Bob’s confidence as so many illusions; he
would smile and say “Yes—quite so!” or “There!
there!”—meaning Bob would get over said illusions
some day, and that was why he was there. He was being
treated for them. Again, if he unbosomed himself
fully, as to the fundamental cause of all this trouble
and turmoil, he would lose to the commodore, et
al., and have to pay that note which he didn’t very
well see how he could pay.</p>
<p>Bob gritted his teeth. Would it not be better to win
now to spite them and in spite of everything? About
the worst that could happen, had happened. Why not
accept, then, this enforced sojourn philosophically and
when the time came, he would walk up to the captain’s
(or commodore’s) office and demand a little pay-envelope
as his hard-earned wage? There would be a
slight balm in that pay-envelope. With the contents
thereof, he could relieve some of dad’s necessities
which soon would be pressing. Why not, with a little
stretch of the imagination, tell himself he (Bob) was
only taking a rest cure? People paid big prices for a
fashionable rest cure. They probably charged pretty
stiff prices here, but it wouldn’t cost him a cent. His
dear friends who put him here would have to pay. He
wasn’t a voluntary boarder. They would have to
vouch for him and his bills. So Bob made up his mind
to have as good a time as he could; in other words, to
grin and bear it, as best he might.</p>
<p>It was a novel experience. Maybe he might write
an article about it for one of the Sunday newspapers
some day—“How It Feels for a Sane Person to be
Forcibly Detained in an Insane Asylum, by One who
Has Been There.” The editor could put all manner of
gay and giddy head-lines over such an experience.
Bob tried to chronicle his feelings in the padded cell,
but he couldn’t conjure up anything awful or harrowing.
There weren’t spiders, or rats, or any crawly
things to lend picturesqueness to the situation. It was
only deadly quiet—the kind of quiet he needed.</p>
<p>He slept most of those first two days, making up
for hours of lost sleep. His swollen eye became less
painful and his appetite grew large and normal. He
had to eat with his fingers because they were afraid to
trust him with a knife and fork, but he told himself
cheerfully that high-class Arabs still ate that way, and
that all he had to do was to sit cross-legged, to be
strictly <em>comme il faut</em>—that is, from the Arab’s standpoint.
Since he had adopted truth as his mentor, Bob
had learned, however, that “what should be” or “what
shouldn’t,” or “mustn’t,” depends a great deal upon the
standpoint, and he was beginning to be very suspicious,
or critical, about the standpoint.</p>
<p>The third day the doctor in charge thought he
could trust him in a room without pads. Bob had a
good color, his eye was clear and his appearance
generally reassuring, so they gave him now the cutest little
cubby-hole, with a cunning little bed and a dear
little window, with flowers outside and iron bars between
the inmate and the flowers. The managing-medico
proudly called Bob’s attention to the flowers
and the view. One gazing out could see miles and
miles of beautiful country. The managing-med. talked
so much about that view that Bob chimed in and said
it was lovely, too, only, it reminded him of the bone
set just beyond reach of a dog chained to <em>his</em> cute little
cubby-hole; or the jug of water and choice viands
the Bedouins of the desert set before their victim
after they have buried him to the neck in the sand.
Bob was going on, trying to think of other felicitous
comparisons, when he caught a look in the managing-med’s.
eye that stopped him.</p>
<p>“I wonder if you are well enough, after all, to appreciate
this cozy and home-like little apartment?” said
the med. musingly.</p>
<p>Bob hastily apologized for the figures of speech.
The padded place was very restful, no doubt, but he
was quite rested now. Any more padded-room kind
of rest would be too much. He looked at the view and
expatiated upon it, even calling attention to certain
charming details of the landscape. The flowers made
a charming touch of color and they were just the kind
of flowers he liked—good, old-fashioned geraniums!
He could say all this and still tell the truth. The
medico studied him attentively; then he concluded he
would risk it and permit Bob to stay in the room.</p>
<p>But he didn’t stay there long. Several nights later
a pebble clicked against his window; at first, he did
not notice. The sound was repeated. Then Bob got
up, went to his window, raised it noiselessly and looked
out. In the shadow, beneath the window, stood a
figure.</p>
<p>“Catch,” whispered a voice and instinctively Bob
put out his hand. But he didn’t catch; he missed.
Again and again some one below tossed something until
finally he did catch. He looked at the object—a spool
of thread. Now what on earth did he want with a
spool of thread? Did the person below think some of
his garments needed mending? It was strong, serviceable
enough thread.</p>
<p>For some moments Bob cogitated, then going to the
bureau, he picked up a tooth-brush, tied it to the
thread, and let it down. After an interval he pulled
up the thread; the tooth-brush had disappeared and a
file was there in its stead. Then Bob tied to the thread
something else and instead of it, he got back the end
of an excellent manila rope. After that he went to
work. It took Bob about an hour to get those bars
out; it took him, then, about a minute to get out himself.
Fortunately some one in a near-by room was
having a tantrum and the little rasping sound of the
filing couldn’t be heard. The louder the person yelled,
the harder Bob filed.</p>
<p>When he reached the earth some one extended a
hand and led him silently out of the garden and into
the road beyond. Bob went along meekly and obediently.
Not far down the road was a taxicab. Bob
got in and his fair rescuer followed. So far he
hadn’t said a word to her; language seemed superfluous.
But as they dashed away, she murmured:</p>
<p>“Isn’t it lovely?”’</p>
<p>“Is it?” he asked. Somehow he wasn’t feeling
particularly jubilant over his escape. In fact, he found
himself wondering almost as soon as he had reached
the earth, if it wouldn’t have been wiser, after all, to
have spent the rest of those three weeks in pleasant
seclusion. The presence of the temperamental young
thing suggested new and more perplexing problems
perhaps. He had regarded her as somewhat of a joke,
but she wasn’t a joke just now; she was a reality.
What was he going to do with her, and with himself,
for that matter? Why were they dashing madly across
the country like that together?</p>
<p>It was as if he were carrying her off, and he certainly
didn’t want to do that. He wasn’t in love with
her, and she wasn’t with him. At least, he didn’t
think she was. It was only her temperamental disposition
that caused her to imagine she was in love,
because she thought him something that he wasn’t.
And when she found out he wasn’t, but was only a
plain, ordinary young man, not of much account anyhow,
what a shock would be the awakening! Perhaps
he’d better stop the machine, go back into the garden,
climb up to his room in the crazy-house and tumble
into bed? His being here, embarked on a preposterous
journey, seemed a case of leaping before looking, or
thinking.</p>
<p>“Why so quiet, darling?” giggled the temperamental
young thing, snuggling closer.</p>
<p>“Don’t call me that. I—I won’t stand it.”</p>
<p>“All right, dearie.” With another giggle.</p>
<p>“And drop that ‘dearie’ dope, too,” he commanded.</p>
<p>“Just as you say. Only what <em>shall</em> I call you?”</p>
<p>“I guess plain ‘darn fool’ will do.”</p>
<p>“Oh, you’re too clever to be called that,” she expostulated.</p>
<p>“Me, clever?” Scornfully.</p>
<p>“Yes; think how long you have fooled the police.”</p>
<p>“I wish you wouldn’t talk such nonsense.” Irritably.</p>
<p>“I won’t. On condition!”</p>
<p>“What?”</p>
<p>“If you’ll put your arm around me.”</p>
<p>“I won’t.”</p>
<p>“Oh, yes, you will.” She adjusted it for him.</p>
<p>“All right! If you want some one to hug you when
he doesn’t want to!” he said in aggrieved tones.</p>
<p>“That makes it all the nicer,” she returned. “There
are ever so many men that want to. This—this is so
different!” With a sigh.</p>
<p>“There you go, with some more nonsense talk!”
grumbled Bob.</p>
<p>“Well,” she giggled, “there’s always a way to make
a poor, weak, helpless little thing stop talking.”</p>
<p>“Of all the assurance!” he gasped.</p>
<p>“I love to have some one I can command to make
love to me.”</p>
<p>“I’m going back.” Disgustedly.</p>
<p>“Oh, no, you’re not. You can’t.”</p>
<p>“Why?”</p>
<p>“You’d be arrested, if you did. They are coming
for you. That’s why I came—to circumvent them!”</p>
<p>“They?”</p>
<p>“All has been discovered.”</p>
<p>“I fail to understand.”</p>
<p>“What did you do with it?” she countered.</p>
<p>“It?”</p>
<p>“The swag.”</p>
<p>Bob started to withdraw his arm but she clapped
a small warm hand on his big warm hand and held
his strong right arm about her slim, adaptable waist.
Her head trailed on his shoulder, while she started
floating off in dreamland.</p>
<p>“I just love eloping,” she murmured.</p>
<p>“What was that last word?” he observed combatively.</p>
<p>“Elope! elope! elope!” she whispered dreamily, her
slim, young feminine figure close to his big masculine
bulk.</p>
<p>“So you think you’re eloping with me?” said Bob
ominously.</p>
<p>“I know I am.” In that musical die-away tone.
“We’re headed straight for old New York and we’re
going to get married in the little church around the
corner. Then”—with a happy laugh—“we may have
to disguise ourselves and flee.”</p>
<p>“May I kindly inquire—that is, if I have any voice
in our future operations—<em>why</em> we may have to disguise
ourselves?”</p>
<p>“In case they should want to capture you. The police,
I mean.”</p>
<p>“Police?” he said.</p>
<p>“Didn’t I just tell you they were coming for you?”</p>
<p>“Indeed?” He looked down in her eyes to see if
she was in earnest. He believed she was. “For
what?”</p>
<p>“Oh, you know.” She raised her lips. “Say, that
was a real stingy one, under the oak.”</p>
<p>“You say all has been discovered?” went on Bob,
disregarding her last remark.</p>
<p>“I say that was a real stingy—”</p>
<p>“Hang it!” But he had to. He knew he had to
get that idea out of her head, before he could get any
more real information from her.</p>
<p>“And think how you deceived poor little me, about
it!” she purred contentedly. After all, thought Bob,
it didn’t take “much of a one” to satisfy her. She had
only wanted “it,” perhaps, because “it” fitted in; “it”
went with eloping. Perhaps “it” would have to happen
about once so often. Bob hoped not. She was a
dainty little tyrant who let him see plainly she had
sharp claws. She could scratch as well as purr. Somehow,
he felt that he was doubly in her power—that
he was doubly her slave now—that something had
happened which made him so. He could not imagine
what it was.</p>
<p>“They’re keeping it very quiet, though,” she went
on. “The robbery, I mean!”</p>
<p>“There has been a robbery at Mrs. Ralston’s?”</p>
<p>“Of course. And you didn’t know a thing about it?”
she mocked him.</p>
<p>“I certainly did not.”</p>
<p>“You say that just as if it were so,” she observed
admiringly. “I don’t suppose you are aware that
some one did really substitute a counterfeit brooch
for Mrs. Vanderpool’s wonderful pink pearl and
bronze diamond brooch, after all? Oh, no, you don’t
know that. You’re only a poor little ignorant dear.
Bless its innocent little heart! It didn’t know a thing.
Not it!” She was talking baby-talk now, the while
her fingers were playing with Bob’s ear. He was so
interested in what she was saying, however, that he
failed to note the baby-talk and overlooked the liberties
she was taking with his hearing apparatus.</p>
<p>“By jove!” he exclaimed. “That accounts for what
I thought I saw in the hall that night when I left your
room. Imagined I saw some one! Believe now it
was some one, after all. And that door I heard click?
Whose door is that on the other side of the hall from
your room and about twenty-five feet nearer the landing?”
Excitedly.</p>
<p>“Gwendoline Gerald’s,” was the unexpected answer.</p>
<p>Bob caught his breath. He was becoming bewildered.
“But nothing was missing from Miss Gerald’s
room, was there?” he asked.</p>
<p>“Don’t <em>you</em> know?” said she.</p>
<p>“I do not.”</p>
<p>“My! aren’t you the beautiful fibber! I’m wondering
if you ever tell the truth?”</p>
<p>“I don’t tell anything else.” Indignantly. “And
that’s the trouble.”</p>
<p>“And how well you stick to it!” Admiringly. “If
you tell such ones <em>before</em>,
how will it be <em>after</em>?”</p>
<p>“After what?” he demanded.</p>
<p>“The church ceremony,” she giggled.</p>
<p>“Don’t you worry about that. There isn’t going
to be any.”</p>
<p>“It’s perfectly lovely of you to say there isn’t. It
will be such fun to see you change your mind.” She
spoke in that regular on-to-Washington tone. “I can
just see you walking up the aisle. Won’t you look
handsome? And poor, demure little me! I shan’t
look like hardly anything.”</p>
<p>Bob pretended not to hear.</p>
<p>“You say they are keeping it very quiet about the
robbery at the Ralston house. How, then, did you
come to know?”</p>
<p>“Eavesdropping.” Shamelessly. “Thought it was
necessary you should know the ‘lay of the land.’ But
never mind the ‘how.’ It is sufficient that I managed
to overhear Lord Stanfield say he was going to send
for you. Gwendoline Gerald knows about the robbery
and so does her aunt and Lord Stanfield, but it’s being
kept from all the other guests for the present. Even
Mrs. Vanderpool doesn’t know. She still thinks the
brooch she is wearing is the real one, poor dear! Lord
Stanfield discovered it wasn’t. He asked her one day
to let him see it. Then, he just said: ‘Aw! How interesting!’—that
is, to her. But to Mrs. Ralston he
said it was an imitation and that some guest had substituted
the false brooch for the real. Mrs. Vanderpool
is not to know because Lord Stanfield says the
thief must not dream he is suspected. He wants to
give him full swing yet a while—‘enough rope to hang
himself with,’ were the words he used. It seems Lord
Stanfield anticipated things would be missing. He
said he knew when a certain person—he didn’t say
whom”—gazing up at Bob adoringly—“appeared on
the scene, things just went. That’s why Lord Stanfield
got asked to the Ralston house. Then when he said
he was coming after you, I thought it would be such
a joke if you weren’t there to receive him. And that’s
why I came to elope with you. And isn’t it all too
romantic for anything? I am sure none of those
plays comes up to it. Maybe you’ll dramatize our
little romance some day—that is—”</p>
<p>Miss Dolly suddenly stopped. “Isn’t that a car coming
up behind?”</p>
<p>Bob looked around, too, and in the far distance saw
a light. “Believe it is,” he answered.</p>
<p>She leaned forward and spoke to the driver. They
were traveling with only one lamp lighted; the driver
now put that out. Then he went on until he came to
a private roadway, leading into some one’s estate, when
quickly turning, he ran along a short distance and
finally stopped the car in a dark shaded spot. Bob
gazed back and in a short time saw a big car whir by.
Idly he wondered whether it contained the police, or
the managing medico and some of his staff. Between
them, he was promised a right lively time—altogether
too lively. He wondered which ones would get him
first? It was a kind of a competition and he would be
first prize to the winners. Well, it was well to have
the enemy—or half of the enemy—in front of him.
Of course, the other half might come up any moment
behind. He would have to take that chance, he
thought, as they now returned to the highway. Meanwhile
Miss Dolly’s eyes were bright with excitement.
She was enjoying herself very much.</p>
<h1 id='t5732'>CHAPTER XIV—MUTINY</h1>
<p>They resumed the conversation where they had
left off.</p>
<p>“It seems to me,” said Bob, “from all you say, that
monocle-man has been a mighty busy person.”</p>
<p>“Of course you knew right along what he is. You
didn’t need any information from poor little me about
him. He couldn’t fool great big You!” she affirmed
admiringly.</p>
<p>“I can imagine what he is—now,” observed Bob
meditatively. He was turning over in his mind what
she had said about that substituted brooch. The some
one Bob had imagined he had seen in the hall, after
leaving Miss Dolly’s room, might not have been the
real thief, after all; it might have been the monocle-man
on the lookout for the thief. And perhaps the
monocle-man had seen Bob. That was the reason he
was “coming for him.” Bob could imagine dear old
dad’s feelings, if he (Bob) got sent to Sing Sing.
What if, instead of rustling and rising to the occasion,
in that fine, old honorable Japanese way, Bob should
bring irretrievable disgrace on an eminently respectable
family name?</p>
<p>He could see himself in stripes now, with his head
shaved, and doing the lock-step. Perhaps, even at
that moment, descriptions of him were being sent
broadcast. And if so, it would look as if he were
running away from the officers of the law, which
would be tantamount to a confession of guilt. Bob
shivered. The temperamental young thing did not
share his apprehensions.</p>
<p>“Of course, Lord Stanfield only <em>thinks</em> he has evidence
enough to convict you,” she said confidently.
“But you’ll meet him at every point and turn the laugh
on him.”</p>
<p>“Oh, will I?” said Bob ironically.</p>
<p>“And you’ll make him feel so cheap! Of course,
you’ve got something up your sleeve—”</p>
<p>“Wish I had,” he muttered.</p>
<p>“Something deep and mysterious,” she went on in
that confident tone. “That’s why you acted so queer
toward some people. You had a purpose. It was a
ruse. Wasn’t it now?” she concluded triumphantly.</p>
<p>“It was not.” Gruffly.</p>
<p>“Fibber! every time you fib, you’ve got to—” She
put up her lips.</p>
<p>“This is getting monotonous,” grumbled Bob.</p>
<p>“On the contrary!” breathed the temperamental
young thing. “I find it lovely. Maybe you’ll learn
how sometime.”</p>
<p>“Don’t want to,” he snapped.</p>
<p>“Oh, yes, you do. But as I was saying, you got
yourself put in that sanatorium to mislead everybody.
It, too, was a ruse—a part of the game. It’s all very
clear—at least, to me!”</p>
<p>He stared at her. And she called <em>that</em> clear? “When
did you leave Mrs. Ralston’s?” he demanded.</p>
<p>“About three hours ago. Said I’d a headache and
believed I’d go to my room. But I didn’t. I just
slipped down to the village and hired a taxi. Maybe
we’d better keep our marriage a secret, at first.” Irrelevantly.</p>
<p>“Maybe we had,” answered Bob. And then he
called out to the man in front. “Stop a moment.”</p>
<p>Before Miss Dolly had time to expostulate, the
driver obeyed. Bob sprang out.</p>
<p>“You aren’t going to leave me, are you?” said the
temperamental little thing. “If so—” She made as
if to get out, too.</p>
<p>“No; I’m not going to leave you just yet,” answered
Bob. Then to the driver: “See here! Your blamed
machine is turned in the wrong direction. You know
where you’re going to take us?”</p>
<p>“New York.”</p>
<p>“No; back to Mrs. Ralston’s. You take the first
cross-road you come to and steer right for there.”</p>
<p>“You’re not to do any such thing,” called out Miss
Dolly. “You’re to go where <em>I</em> tell you.”</p>
<p>“You’re to do nothing of the sort,” said Bob.
“You’re to go where <em>I</em> tell you.”</p>
<p>The driver scratched his head.</p>
<p>“Which is it to be?” asked Bob. “This is the place
to have an understanding.”</p>
<p>“The lady hired me,” he answered.</p>
<p>“Yes, and I won’t pay you at all, if you don’t mind,”
said Miss Dolly in firm musical accents.</p>
<p>“Guess that settles it,” observed the driver.</p>
<p>“You mean—?” began Bob, eying him.</p>
<p>“It means I obey orders. She’s my ‘fare,’ not you.
We just picked you up.”</p>
<p>“And that’s your last word?” Ominously.</p>
<p>“Say, lady”—the driver turned wearily—“have I
got to suppress this crazy man you got out of the bughouse?”</p>
<p>“Maybe that would be a good plan,” answered Miss
Dolly, militancy now in her tone. “That is, if he
doesn’t get in, just sweet and quiet-like.”</p>
<p>“It’ll be twenty dollars extra,” said the man, rising.
He was a big fellow, too.</p>
<p>“Make it thirty,” returned Miss Dolly spiritedly.
It was an issue and had to be met. There was an accent
of “On-to-Parliament!” in her voice. One can’t
show too much mercy to a “slave” when he revolts.
One has to suppress him. One has to teach him who
is mistress. A stern lesson, and the slave learns and
knows his place.</p>
<p>“Now mind the lady and get back where you belong,”
said the driver roughly to Bob. “Your tiles
are loose, and the lady knows what is good for a dingbat
like you.” Possibly he thought the display of a
little authority would be quite sufficient to intimidate
a recent “patient.” They usually became quite mild,
he had heard, when the keepers talked right up to
them, like that. The effect of his language and attitude
upon Bob was not, however, quieting; something
seemed to explode in his brain and he made one spring
and got a football hold; then he heaved and the big
man shot over his shoulder as if propelled from a
catapult. He came down in a ditch, where the breath
seemed to be knocked out of him. Bob got on in front.
As he started the machine, the man sat up and looked
after him. He didn’t try to get up though; he just
looked. No doubt he had had the surprise of his life.</p>
<p>“I’ll leave the car in the village when I’m through
with it,” Bob called back. “A little walk won’t hurt
you.”</p>
<p>The man didn’t answer. “Gee! but that’s a powerful
lunatic for a poor young lady to have on her hands!”
he said to himself.</p>
<p>An hour or so later Bob drew up in front of Mrs.
Ralston’s house. He opened the door politely for Miss
Dolly and the temperamental young thing sprang out.
The guests were still up, indulging in one of those
late dances that begin at the stroke of twelve, and the
big house showed lights everywhere. There were numerous
other taxis and cars in front and Bob’s arrival
attracted no particular attention. Miss Dolly gave him
a look, militant, but still adoring. She let him see she
had claws.</p>
<p>“Maybe I’ll tell,” she said.</p>
<p>“Go ahead,” he answered.</p>
<p>“Aren’t you afraid?”</p>
<p>“No.” He hadn’t done anything wrong.</p>
<p>“Aren’t you even sorry?” she asked, lingering.</p>
<p>“For what?”</p>
<p>“Being so rough to that poor man?”</p>
<p>“I’m not. Good night.”</p>
<p>“Good night—darling.” She threw out that last
word as a challenge. It had a tender but sibilant
sound. It was a mixture of a caress and a scratch.
It meant she hadn’t given up her hold on him. He
might have defeated her in one little contest, but she
would weave new ways to entrap him. She might
even manage to make him out a murderer—he had
been so many things since embarking on that mercurial
truth-telling career—and then she would give him
the choice of the altar or the chair.</p>
<p>He started the machine and she watched him disappear,
musingly. There was a steely light, too, in
her eyes. He was a mutineer and mutineers should,
figuratively, be made to walk the plank. Should she
put him in jail and then come and weep penitently?
At least, it would be thrilling. Certainly anything
was better than that cast-off feeling. She felt no
better than cast-off clothes. This great big brute of
a handsome man, instead of jumping at the chance
to elope with one who had everything to offer such
a one as he, had just turned around and brought her
back home.</p>
<p>Maybe he thought she wasn’t worthy of him. Oh,
wasn’t she? Her small breast arose mutinously, while
that cast-off sensation kept growing and growing.
After rescuing him and saving him, instead of calling
her “his beautiful doll” or other pet names, and humming
glad songs to her—how they would “row, row,
row” on some beautiful river of love—or stroll, stroll,
stroll through pathways of perfume and bliss—instead
of regaling her with these and other up-to-date expressions,
appropriate to the occasion, he had repudiated
her, cast her off, deposited her here on the front
steps, unceremoniously, carelessly, indifferently.</p>
<p>Her cheeks burned at the affront. It was too humiliating.
The little hands closed. The temperamental
fingernails bit into the tender palms. At that
moment the monocle-man sauntered out of the house
and on to the veranda, near where Miss Dolly was
standing. She turned to him quickly. Her temperament
had about reached the Borgia pitch.</p>
<hr class='tb'/>
<p>Bob went on down to the village and to the taxi
stand near the station where he had promised to leave
the machine. The last train had just passed by, after
depositing the last of late-comers from the gay metropolis.
Most of them looked fagged; a few were
mildly “corned.” Bob regarded them absently and
then gave a violent start.</p>
<p>“Gee-gee!” he gasped.</p>
<p>There she was, in truth, the beauteous Gee-gee, and
the fair Gid-up, too! Bob gazed in consternation from
reddish hair to peroxide. The two carried grips and
were dressed in their best—that is to say, each wore
the last thing in hats and the final gasp in gowns.</p>
<p>“Guess none of those society dames will have a
thing on us, when it comes to rags,” Gid-up murmured
to Gee-gee, as they crossed the platform with
little teeny-weeny steps and headed toward a belated
hack or two and Bob’s machine. That young
man yet sat on the driver’s seat of the taxi; he was
too paralyzed to move as he watched them approach.
Where on earth were Gee-gee and Gid-up going? He
feared to learn. He had an awful suspicion.</p>
<p>“Chauffeur!” Gee-gee raised a begloved finger as
she hailed Bob. The glove had seen better days, but
Gee-gee didn’t bother much about gloves. When she
had attained the finality in hats and the <em>ne plus ultra</em>
in skirts, hosiery and stilts (you asked for “shoes”)
she hadn’t much time, or cash, left for gloves which
were always about the same old thing over and over
again, anyway. “Chauffeur!” repeated Gee-gee.</p>
<p>“Meaning me?” inquired Bob in muffled tones. Why
didn’t she take a hack? He had drawn up his taxi
toward the dark end of the platform.</p>
<p>“Yes, meaning you!” replied Gee-gee sharply.
“Can’t say I see any other human spark-plug in this
one-night burg.”</p>
<p>“What can I do for you?” stammered Bob. He
was glad it was so shadowy where he sat, and he
devoutly hoped he would escape recognition.</p>
<p>“What can he do? Did you hear that?” Gee-gee
appealed indignantly to Gid-up. “I don’t suppose a
great jink like you knows enough to get down and
take a lady’s bag? Or, to open the door of the limousine?”</p>
<p>“Well, you see this machine’s engaged,” mumbled
Bob. “No, I don’t mean that.” Hastily. “I mean
I’m not the driver of this car. It doesn’t belong to
me. And that’s the truth.”</p>
<p>“Where is the driver?” Haughtily. “Send for
him at once.” Gee-gee did not like to be crossed.
Gid-up was more good-natured; she only shifted her
gum.</p>
<p>“I can’t send for him,” said Bob drawing his hat
down farther over his face. “He’s down the road.”</p>
<p>“What’s he doing there?”</p>
<p>“I don’t know. Maybe, he’s walking; maybe, he’s
sitting in the ditch.”</p>
<p>Gee-gee stared, but she could see only a big shadowy
form; she couldn’t make out Bob’s features. “The
boob’s got bees,” she confided to Gid-up, and then
more imperatively: “Are you going to get off your
perch and let us in?”</p>
<p>“Beg to be excused,” muttered Bob. “Hack over
there! Quick! Before some one else gets it.”</p>
<p>That started them away. The teeny-weeny steps
encompassed, accelerando, the distance between Bob
and his old friend, the hackman who had laughed at
what he supposed were Bob’s eccentricities. The hackman
got down and hoisted in the grips.</p>
<p>“Where to?” he said.</p>
<p>Bob listened expectantly. He feared what was
coming.</p>
<p>“Mrs. Ralston’s,” answered Gee-gee haughtily. At
the same time Gid-up threw away her gum. She
would have to practise being without it.</p>
<p>Bob drearily watched the hack roll away. He refused
another offer of a fare—this time from a bibulous
individual who had supped, not wisely, but too
well—and nearly got into a fight because the bibulous
individual was persistent and discursive. Then Bob
walked away; he didn’t think where he was going; he
only wanted to get away from that chauffeur job.
What would come of these new developments, he wondered?
The temperamental young thing was “peeved,”
and the ponies (not equine) had come galloping into
the scene at the critical moment.</p>
<p>He tried to account for their presence. Undoubtedly
it was a coup of Mrs. Dan’s. When she learned
that dear Dan was bringing counter-influence to bear
upon her witnesses, she arranged to remove them.
She brought them right into her own camp. How?
Gee-gee and Gid-up did a really clever and fairly refined
musical and dancing act together. Mrs. Ralston
frequently called upon professional talent to help her
out in the entertaining line. It is true, Gee-gee and
Gid-up were hardly “high enough up,” or well enough
known, to commend themselves ordinarily to the good
hostess in search of the best and most expensive artists,
but then Mrs. Dan may have brought influence to bear
upon Mrs. Ralston. And Mrs. Clarence may have
seconded Mrs. Dan’s efforts. They may have said
Gee-gee and Gid-up were dashing and different, and
would be, at least, a change. They may have exaggerated
the talents of the pair and pictured them as
rising stars whom it would be a credit for Mrs. Ralston
to discover. The hostess was extremely good-natured
and liked to oblige her friends, or to comply
with their requests.</p>
<p>Of course, the young ladies would not appear on the
scene as Gee-gee and Gid-up, in all probability. No
doubt, they would assume other and more appropriate
cognomens (non equine). The last show they had
played in, had just closed, so a little society engagement,
with strong publicity possibilities, on the side,
could not be anything but appealing, especially to Gee-gee
with her practical tendencies. Of course, they
would have to make a brave effort to put on their
society manners, but Gid-up had once had a home and
Gee-gee knew how people talked in the society novels.
Trust Gee-gee to adapt herself!</p>
<p>Bob felt he could figure it all out. Their coming
so late would seem to indicate they had been sent for
in haste. Mrs. Dan, perhaps, had become alarmed
and wasn’t going to take any more chances with the
commodore who was capable of sequestering her witnesses,
of inveigling them on board one of his friend’s
yachts, for example, and then marooning them on a
desert isle, or transporting them to one of those cafe
chantants of Paris. Besides, with that after-midnight
“hug” and “grizzly” going on, Mrs. Dan knew it
wouldn’t much matter how late the pair arrived.</p>
<p>By the time Bob had argued this out, he was a long
way from the village. He had been walking mechanically
toward the Ralston house and now found himself
on the verge of the grounds. After a moment’s hesitation,
he went in and walked up to the house. The
dancing had, at length, ceased and the big edifice was
now almost dark. The inmates, or most of them,
seemed to have retired. A few of the men might yet
be lingering in the smoking-room or over billiards.
For a minute or two Bob stood in silent meditation.
Then his glance swept toward a certain trellis, and a
sudden thought smote him.</p>
<p>Wasn’t he still Mrs. Ralston’s guest? The period
for which he had been invited hadn’t expired and he
hadn’t, as yet, been asked to vacate the premises.
True, some people had forcibly, and in a most highhanded
manner, removed him for a brief period, but
they had not been acting for Mrs. Ralston, or by her
orders. He was, therefore, legitimately still a guest
and it was obviously his duty not to waive the responsibility.
He might not want to come back but
he had to. That even-tenor-of-his-way condition demanded
it. Besides, manhood revolted against retreat
under fire. To run away, as he had told himself
in the car with Miss Dolly, was a confession of guilt.
He must face them once more—even Miss Gerald
and the hammer-thrower. He could in fancy, see
himself handcuffed in her presence, but he couldn’t
help it. Better that, than to be hunted in the byways
and hovels of New York! Oddly, too, the idea of a
big comfortable bed appealed to him.</p>
<p>He climbed up the trellis and stood on the balcony
upon which his room opened. Pushing up a window,
he entered and feeling around in the darkness he
came upon his grip where he had left it. He drew
the curtains, turned on the lights and undressed. He
acted just as if nothing had happened. Then, donning
his pajamas, he turned out the lights, drew back
the curtains once more, and tumbled into the downy.</p>
<h1 id='t6171'>CHAPTER XV—AN EXTRAORDINARY INTERVIEW</h1>
<p>But he could not sleep; his brain was too busy.
He wondered in what part of the house Gee-gee
and Gid-up were domiciled? He wondered if Mrs.
Dan and Mrs. Clarence were drawing up affidavits?
He wondered if that taxicab man had yet come to
town and if he would get out a warrant, charging him
(Bob) with assault? He wondered if Dan and Clarence
knew Gee-gee and Gid-up were here, and if so,
what would they do about it? Would they, too, come
prancing on the scene? He wondered if Miss Gerald
were engaged to the hammer-man? He wondered if
the maniac-medico would think of looking for him
(Bob) here? He wondered where the police were
looking for him and who was the thief, anyway? This
last mental query led him to consider the guests, one
by one.</p>
<p>He began with the bishop. Suspicion, of course,
could not point in that direction. Still, there was that
play, <em>Deacon Brodie</em>—a very good man was a thief in
it. But a deacon wasn’t a bishop. Besides, Bob had
great respect for the cloth. He dismissed the bishop
with an inward apology. He next considered the
judge, but the judge was too portly for those agile
sleight-of-hand feats and the deft foot-work required.
He passed on to the doctor. The doctor had delicate
little hands, adapted for filching work, but he was too
much absorbed in cutting up little dogs and cats to
care for such insensible trifles as glittering gee-gaws.
The doctor might be capable of absconding with a
Fido or somebody’s pet Meow, but an inanimate Kooh-i-nor
would hold for him no temptations. So from
Doc, Bob passed on to Mrs. Van. But she wouldn’t
surreptitiously appropriate her own brooch. He even
considered the temperamental young thing whose interest
in crime and criminals was really shocking.</p>
<p>He had got about this far in thrashing things over
in his mind when a rather startling realization that he
wasn’t alone in the room smote him. Some one was
over there—at the window, and that some one had
softly crossed the room. Bob made an involuntary
movement, turning in bed to see plainer, when with
a slight sound of suppressed surprise, the some one
almost magically disappeared. Bob couldn’t tell
whether he had gone out of the window, or had
sprung back into the room and was now concealing
himself behind the heavy curtains. The young man
made a sudden rush for the window and grab for the
curtain, only to discover there was no one there; nor
could he see any one on the balcony, or climbing down.
He did see below, however, a skulking figure fast
vanishing among the shrubbery. A moment, the
thought of the commodore insinuated itself in the
young man’s bewildered brain, but the commodore
would not again be trying to see him (Bob) here,
for the very good reason that Dan could not know
Bob was here. No one yet knew Bob had returned
to Mrs. Ralston’s house. The commodore and Clarence
no doubt still believed Bob to be shut up in a
cute little cubby-hole with bars.</p>
<p>The skulking figure below, then, could be dissociated
from the complicated domestic tangle; his proper
place was in that other silent drama, dealing with
mysterious peculations. Should Bob climb down, follow
and attempt to capture him? Bob had on only his
pajamas and already the fellow was far away. He
would lead any one a fine chase and Bob hadn’t any
special desire to go romping over hills in his present attire,
or want of attire. If any one caught him doing it,
what excuse could he make? That he was chasing
an accomplice of a thief inside the house who had
probably dropped his glittering booty for his pal to
take away? But he (Bob) was supposed to be that
inside-operator, himself, and he wouldn’t be chasing
his own pal. Or again, if he were detected in that
sprinting performance by those who didn’t know he
was supposed to be an inside-operator, but who thought
him only a plain crazy man, wouldn’t the necessity for
his reincarceration be but emphasized? Maybe this
latter contingent of his enemies would consider a
plain, public insane asylum, without flowers in the
window, good enough for him. They, undoubtedly,
<em>would</em> so conclude if they knew the state of Bob’s
private fortune, which certainly did not justify private
institutions.</p>
<p>A slight noise behind him drove all these considerations
from Bob’s mind. He dove at once in the direction
of the sound, only to fall over his grip, and as
he sprawled, not heroically, in the dark, his door was
opened and closed almost noiselessly. Exasperated, he
gathered himself together and made for the door.
Throwing it back, he gazed down the hall, only to
see a figure swiftly vanishing around a dimly-lighted
corner. Bob couldn’t make out whether it was a man
or a woman, but seeing no one else in the hall, he impetuously
and recklessly darted after it. When he
reached the corner, however, the figure was gone.</p>
<p>Bob stood in a quandary. There were a good many
different doors around that corner. Through which
one had his mysterious visitor vanished? If he but
knew, he felt certain he could place his hand on the
much wanted individual who was making such a nuisance
of himself in social circles. He might be able
to rid society of one of those essentially modern pests,
and at the same time lift the mantle of suspicion from
himself. At least, he would be partly rehabilitated.
Later, he might complete the process. And oh, to
have her once more see him as he was.</p>
<p>He was sorely tempted to try a door. He even put
his hand on the knob of the door nearest the corner.
The figure must have turned in here; he couldn’t have
gone farther without Bob’s having caught sight of
him. At least, Bob felt almost sure of this conclusion,
having attained that corner with considerable
celerity, himself.</p>
<p>Almost on the point of turning the knob, prudence
bade Bob to pause. Suppose he made a mistake? Suppose,
for example, he stumbled upon Gee-gee’s room,
or Gid-up’s? The perspiration started on Bob’s brow.
Gee-gee would be quite capable of hanging on to him
and then raising a row, just for publicity purposes.
She would make “copy” out of anything, that girl
would. Then, if it wasn’t Gee-gee’s room, it might
be Mrs. Van’s. Fancy his invading the privacy of
that austere lady’s boudoir! Bob’s hand shook
slightly and the knob rattled a trifle; he hastily released
it. To his horror a voice called out.</p>
<p>“Any one there?”</p>
<p>It was Gee-gee. Bob stood still, not daring to stir,
lest Gee-gee, with senses alert, should hear him and
come out and find him. He prayed devoutly not to
be “found.” It was bad enough to be crazy, and to
be a social buccaneer, without having Miss Gerald
look upon him as an intrigant, a Don Juan and a Jonathan
Wild all rolled into one. Bob wanted to flee
the worst way, but still he thought it better to contain
himself and stand there like a wooden man a few
moments longer.</p>
<p>“Any one there?” repeated Gee-gee.</p>
<p>A neighboring door opened and one of the last men
Bob wanted to see, under the circumstances, looked
out. It was the hammer-thrower and his honest face
expressed a world of wonder, incredulity and reproach,
as he beheld and recognized Bob, who didn’t
know what to do, or to say. He certainly didn’t want
to say anything though, having no desire to agitate
Miss Gee-gee any further. Fortunately, the
hammer-thrower seemed too amazed for words. He just kept
looking and looking. “Where on earth did you come
from?” his glance seemed to say. “Are you the ghost
of Bob Bennett? And if you aren’t, what are you
doing here, before a lady’s door, at this time of night?”</p>
<p>Disapproval now became mixed with indecision
in the hammer-thrower’s glance. He seemed trying
to make up his mind whether or not it was a case demanding
forcible measures on his part. Was it his
duty to spring upon Bob, then and there, and “show
him up” before the world? Bob read the thought. In
another moment Gee-gee might come to the door, and
then—? Bob suddenly and desperately determined to
throw himself upon the mercy of the hammer-thrower.
Indeed, he had no choice.</p>
<p>Quickly he moved to the door where his hated
rival stood and as quickly pushed by him and entered
that person’s room. At the same moment Gee-gee
unlocked her door. Bob couldn’t see her, though, as
he was now thankfully swallowed up in the depths of
a recess in the hammer-thrower’s room. Gee-gee
peeked out. She met the eye of the hammer-thrower
who had modestly withdrawn most of his person back
into his apartment and who now suffered only a fraction
of his face to be revealed to Gee-gee at that unseemly
hour and place, and under such unseemly circumstances.</p>
<p>“I beg your pardon,” said the hammer-thrower
deferentially, and in a very low tone, “but did you
call out?”</p>
<p>“Yes, I thought I heard some one at my door.”</p>
<p>Bob hardly breathed. Would the hammer-thrower
hale him forth? Would he toss him—or try to—right
out into the hall at Gee-gee’s feet?</p>
<p>“I—I don’t see any one,” said the hammer-thrower
hesitatingly, and still in a very low tone. His
hesitation, however, told Bob he had considered or
was still considering that forcible policy.</p>
<p>“I certainly thought I did hear some one,” observed
Gee-gee, matching the other’s tones. His voice
seemed to imply that it might be as well not to arouse
any others of the household and Gee-gee involuntarily
fell in with the suggestion.</p>
<p>“You—” Again, however, that awful hesitation!
The hammer-thrower had no reason to like Bob, for
did he not know that young gentleman had the presumption
to adore Miss Gerald? Still the apparently
more successful suitor for Gwendoline’s hand had a
sportsmanlike instinct. He’d been brought up to be
conscientious. He had been educated to be gentlemanly
and considerate. Perhaps he was asking himself
now if it might not be more sportsmanlike not to
denounce Bob, then and there, but to give him, at
least, a chance to explain? “You—you must be mistaken,”
said the hammer-thrower, after a pause, in a
low tense whisper.</p>
<p>“You’re sure it wasn’t you?” murmured Gee-gee
softly but suspiciously and eying the other’s open and
trustworthy countenance.</p>
<p>“I?” For a moment Bob thought now, indeed, had
come the time to eject him, but—“Is that a reasonable
conjecture?” the other murmured back.</p>
<p>Gee-gee pondered. “No, it ain’t,” she confessed, at
length. Locked double-doors separated her room and
the hammer-thrower’s. He would surely have used
a skeleton key on those doors were he the guilty
party, instead of going out into the hall to try to get
in that way. “I got to thinking of that swell burglar
who is going the rounds, before I went to sleep,” murmured
Gee-gee, “and I may have been dreaming of
him! Sorry to have disturbed you.” And Gee-gee
closed her door very quietly.</p>
<p>She thought she must have been mistaken about
the intruder. Anyhow, there wasn’t much excitement
for an actress any more, in being robbed. That advertising
stunt had been so overworked that even the
provincial dramatic critics yawned and tossed the advance
man’s little yarn of “jewels lost” right into an
unsympathetic waste-basket. A scandal in high life
was always more efficacious. No one ever got tired
of scandals and city editors simply clamored for
“more.” So Gee-gee composed herself for sleep
again. She had reason to be satisfied, for had not
she and Gid-up, who roomed with her, sat up late and
arranged final details before retiring?</p>
<p>Gid-up would say: “We’ll make it like this.” And
Gee-gee would answer: “No, like this.” Of course,
Gee-gee’s way was better. Upon a slender thread of
fact she fashioned, as Dickie had feared, a most wonderful
edifice of fancy. She had mapped out a case
that would startle even dear old New York. “Better
do it good, if we’re going to do it at all,” she had
said. Gid-up had been a little doubtful at first, but
she always did what Gee-gee told her to in the end.
And Gee-gee knew she could depend upon Gid-up’s
memory, for once the latter had had a small part.
She had to say: “Send for the doctor” and she had
never been known to get mixed up and say: “Send for
the police,” or for the undertaker, or anything equally
ridiculous. Having thoroughly rehearsed her lines,
she would stick to them like a major. When Mrs.
Dan and Mrs. Clarence and the two G’s should get
together on the morrow, the largest anticipations of
the two former ladies would be realized. Gee-gee
wouldn’t have Mrs. Dan disappointed for the world.
Gid-up was rather afraid of Mrs. Clarence; however,
she had been batted about by so many rough stage-managers
and cranky musical-directors, she could
stand almost anything.</p>
<p>But what about Bob?</p>
<hr class='tb'/>
<p>That young gentleman, now seated in the hammer-thrower’s
room, had frankly revealed what had happened
to bring him out in the hall. In a low tone he
told why he had approached Gee-gee’s door and what
had been in his mind when he had placed his hand on
the knob. The hammer-thrower, if not appearing
particularly impressed by Bob’s story, listened gravely;
occasionally he shook his head. It wasn’t, on the
whole, a very reasonable-sounding yarn. Truth certainly
sounded stranger than fiction in this instance.
Bob couldn’t very well blame the other for not believing.
Still he (Bob) owed him that explanation.
Though he (Bob) might detest him as the man who
would probably rob him of Miss Gerald’s hand, still
the fact remained that the hammer-thrower appeared
at present in the guise of his (Bob’s) savior. Bob
couldn’t get away from this unpleasant conclusion.
He didn’t want to have anything to do with the other
and yet here he was in his room, actually being shielded
by him. The situation was, indeed, well-nigh intolerable.</p>
<p>The hammer-thrower studied Bob with quiet earnest
eyes, and the latter had to acknowledge to himself
that the man’s face was strong and capable. If Miss
Gerald married him—as seemed not unlikely—she
would, at any rate, not get a weak man. He was about
as big as Bob, though not so reckless-looking. Bob
was handsomer, in his dashing way, but some girls,
sensibly inclined, would prefer what might appear a
more reliable type. The hammer-thrower looked so
sure of himself and his ground he inspired confidence.
He looked too sure of his ground now, as regards Bob.</p>
<p>“It won’t do,” he said with his usual directness to
Bob, when the latter had finished explaining. “Sounds
a little fishy! I’m sorry, old chap, but I shall have to
have time to think it all over. And then I’ll try to
decide what is best to be done. You say you were
unjustly incarcerated in a private sanatorium.” Bob
hadn’t explained the circumstances—who had “incarcerated”
him and why. “That you were incarcerated
at all is a matter of regret.”</p>
<p>“To you?” said Bob cynically.</p>
<p>“Of course.” Firmly, but with faint surprise. “You
didn’t think I rejoiced at your misfortune, did you?”</p>
<p>“I didn’t know. I thought it possible.”</p>
<p>The hammer-thrower’s heavy brows drew together.
“You seem to have a little misconception of my character,”
he observed with a trace of formality. “You
were incarcerated, apparently, <em>pro bono publico</em>. I
had no hand in it. If I had been consulted, I should
have hesitated some time before expressing an opinion.”</p>
<p>“Thanks,” said Bob curtly. Such generous reserve
was rather galling, coming from this quarter.</p>
<p>“I’m afraid you don’t mean that,” replied the other.
“And it’s a bad habit to say what you don’t mean.
However, we are drifting from the subject. You will
pardon me for not swallowing, <em>a capite ad calcem</em>,
that little Münchhausen explanation of yours.”</p>
<p>“I don’t care whether you swallow it head, neck
and breeches, or not,” returned Bob. The other had
taken a classical course at college, and Bob conceived
he was ponderously trying to show off, just to be annoying.
He was adopting a doubly irritating and
classical manner of calling Bob a liar. And that
young man was not accustomed to being called that—at
least, of yore! Maybe he would have to stand it
now. It seemed so. “You’re like a good many other
people I’ve met lately,” said Bob, not without a touch
of weariness as well as bitterness. “You don’t know
the truth when you hear it.”</p>
<p>The hammer-thrower drew up his heavy shoulders.
“No use abusing me, old chap,” he said in even well-poised
tones. “Am I at fault for your unpopularity?
Indeed”—as if arguing with himself in his slow heavy
fashion—“I fail to understand why you have made
yourself unpopular. You seem to have proceeded with
deliberate intention. However, that is irrelevant. You
say there was some one in your room, or rather the
room you were supposed to have vacated; but to which
you have unaccountably returned—not, I imagine, by
way of the front door.” Severely. “And after entering
in burglarious fashion you pursued a phantom.
The phantom vanished, leaving you in a compromising
position. You expect people to believe that?” Shaking
his head.</p>
<p>“I should be surprised if they did,” answered Bob
gloomily. “I suppose you’ll tell everybody to-morrow.”</p>
<p>“That’s the question,” said the other seriously.
“What is my duty in the matter? I don’t want to do
you an irreparable injury, yet appearances certainly
seem to indicate that you—” He hesitated.</p>
<p>“Never mind the Latin for it,” said Bob. “Plain
Anglo-Saxon will do. Call me a thief.”</p>
<p>“It’s an ugly word,” said the other reluctantly,
“and—well, I don’t wish to be hasty. My father always
told me to help a man whenever I could; not to shove
him down. And maybe—” He paused. There was
really a nice expression on his strong face.</p>
<p>“Oh, you think I may be only a young offender—a
juvenile in crime?” exclaimed Bob bitterly.</p>
<p>“The words are your own,” observed the other.
“To tell you the truth,” seriously, “I hardly know what
to think. It is all too extraordinary—too unexpected.
I’ll have to ponder on it. The profs, at college always
said I had the champion slow brain. The peculiar
part to me is,” that puzzled look returning to his
heavy features, “I can’t understand why you’re making
people think what they do of you? Frankly, I
don’t believe you’re ‘dippy.’ You were always rather—just
what is the word?—‘mercurial’—yes; that will
do. But your head looks right enough to me.”</p>
<p>“What’s the Latin for ‘Thank you’?” said Bob.</p>
<p>“Do you really think this is a trivial matter?” asked
the other, bending a stronger glance upon his visitor.
“I believe you are somewhat obligated to me. Please
bear that in mind.” With quiet dignity. “As I was
saying, your conduct since coming here, seems to baffle
explanation—that is, the right one. I wonder what
is your ‘lay,’ anyhow? What’s the idea? I like to be
able to grasp people.” Forcefully. “And you escape
me. I can’t get at the tangible in you. Nor”—with
a sudden quick glance—“can Miss Gerald—”</p>
<p>“Suppose we leave her name out,” said Bob sharply.
“You’ve done me a favor which I ought not to have
accepted. And I tell you frankly I’d rather have accepted
it from any one else in the world.”</p>
<p>“I think I understand,” replied the other quietly,
with no show of resentment on his heavy features.
“Have a cigar?” Indicating a box on the table.</p>
<p>“I’d rather not.”</p>
<p>“Very well!”</p>
<p>For some moments Bob sat in moody silence. Then
suddenly he got up.</p>
<p>“Am I to be permitted to return to my room?” he
asked.</p>
<p>“I believe I told you I would consider your case,”
said the hammer-thrower.</p>
<p>And Bob passed out. He regained his room without
mishap, which rather surprised him. He almost expected
to be intercepted by the monocle-man but
nothing of the kind happened.</p>
<h1 id='t6623'>CHAPTER XVI—PLAYING WITH BOB</h1>
<p>It took a great deal of courage for Bob to go down
to breakfast the next morning. In fact, he had
never done anything before in his life that demanded
so much courage. He pictured his entrance, anticipating
what would happen; he didn’t try to deceive
himself. The monocle-man would tap him on the
shoulder. “You are my prisoner,” he would say. And
then it would be “exit” for Bob amid the exclamations
and in the face of the accumulated staring of the company.</p>
<p>Bob wasn’t going to play the craven now, though,
so he marched down-stairs and into the breakfast-room,
his head well up. With that smile on his lips
and the frosty light in his blue eyes, he looked not unlike
a young Viking fearlessly presenting a bold brow
to the enemy while his ship is sinking beneath him.
He acted just as if he hadn’t been away and as if nothing
had happened.</p>
<p>“Good-morning, people,” he said in his cheeriest.</p>
<p>For a moment there was a tombstone silence while
Bob, not seeming to notice it, dropped down in a convenient
place at the table. His vis-a-vis, as luck, or
ill-luck would have it, was the monocle-man. Bob felt
the shivers stealing over him. But the monocle-man,
too, acted as if nothing had happened. He didn’t get
up and tap Bob on the shoulder. Perhaps he wished to
finish his breakfast first.</p>
<p>“Aw!—Have some toast,” he observed to Bob.
“Mrs. Ralston’s toast is really delicious.”</p>
<p>“No,” said Bob airily. “I don’t like that English
kind of toast. Makes me think of rusk! No taste to
it! Give me good old American toast with plenty of
butter on it.”</p>
<p>“Aw!” said the monocle-man.</p>
<p>Bob didn’t stop there. He appealed to the bishop
and carried the discussion on to the doctor. He even
went so far, a daredevil look in his sanguine blue eyes
now, as to ask Miss Gerald’s opinion. Miss Gerald,
however, pretended not to hear. Her devoted admirer
was close at hand and Bob saw the hammer-thrower’s
brows knit at sight of him. Bob in his new mood
didn’t care a straw now and looked straight back at
the hammer-thrower, as if daring him to do his worst.
For an instant he thought the hammer-thrower was
going to say something, but he didn’t. Perhaps second
thought told him it would be better taste to wait, for
he lifted his heavy shoulders with rather a contemptuous
or pitying shrug and paid no further attention
to luckless Bob.</p>
<p>The latter kept up a gay conversation between bites,
professing to be quite unaware of a certain extraordinary
reticence with which his light persiflage was
received. He looked around to see if Gee-gee and
Gid-up were anywhere visible and saw that they were
not. This did not surprise him, as theatrical ladies
are usually late risers and like to breakfast in their
rooms; nor would they be apt to mingle promiscuously
with the other guests. Mrs. Ralston, Mrs. Dan and
Mrs. Clarence were also not about. Bob was thankful
Mrs. Ralston needed most of the morning by herself,
or with sundry experts, to beautify; he didn’t care to
see his hostess just yet. It was hard enough to meet
her fair niece, Miss Gerald, under the circumstances.</p>
<p>“I understand we have two new arrivals in the professional
entertaining line,” said Bob to the monocle-man.</p>
<p>“Aw!—how interesting!” replied the other. Bob
couldn’t get much of a “rise” out of him, though unvaryingly
affable in his manner toward the young man.
“Try some of this marmalade—do—it’s Scotch, you
know. All marmalade ought to be Scotch. Dislike
intensely the English make!”</p>
<p>“How unpatriotic!” said Bob cynically. Really, the
monocle-man did it very well. He was a fine imitation.</p>
<p>“Aw!” he said once more.</p>
<p>And then Bob began to play with him. Dear old
dad who was somewhat of a bibliomaniac had, on one
or two of Bob’s vacation trips to London, introduced
the lad to many quaint, out-of-the-way nooks and corners.
Now Bob drew on the source of information thus
gleaned and angled with his one-eye-glassed neighbor.
But the monocle-man fenced beautifully; he knew
more than Bob. And when the latter had exhausted
himself, the monocle-man, with a few twinkles behind
his staring window-pane, played with Bob. He showed
him as a mere child for ignorance of the subject, and
drawled so brilliantly that some of the others became
interested, though professing not to see that Bob was
there. When the monocle-man had finished, Bob felt
abashed. He gazed upon the other with new and
wondrous respect. He had attempted the infantile and
amateurish game of unmasking the other—of exhibiting
his crass ignorance and letting the others draw their
own conclusions—and he had been literally overwhelmed
in his efforts.</p>
<p>Having shown Bob the futility of trying to play with
him, the monocle-man again offered Bob the marmalade.
His manner of doing it made Bob think of
a jailer who believed in the humane treatment of
prisoners and who liked to see them well-fed. Bob for
the second time refused the marmalade and did it most
emphatically. Whereupon the monocle-man smiled.</p>
<p>At that moment Bob met the gaze of the temperamental
young thing. There were dark rings under
her eyes and she looked paler than he had ever seen
her. Also, there was a certain fascinated wonder, not
unmixed with some deeper feeling, in her expression.
She was, no doubt, absolutely astounded to see Bob
there, and talking with the monocle-man. Bob surmised
she would be waiting for him somewhere later
to express herself, and he was not mistaken. Bob got
up. As he did so, he glanced at the monocle-man.
Would he be permitted to go, or would the denouement
now happen? Would the other, alas, arise?</p>
<p>He did nothing of the kind. He let Bob have a little
more line. He even suffered him to walk away,
at the same time smiling once more at vacancy or the
rack of toast. Of course the temperamental young
thing hailed Bob shortly after he was out of the room.
He expected that. She came hurrying up to him, excitement
and terror in her eyes.</p>
<p>“Flee!” she whispered.</p>
<p>“I won’t do it,” answered Bob sturdily.</p>
<p>“Why did you come back?” Agitatedly, “What a
rash thing to do! Like walking into the lions’ den.”</p>
<p>“Well, the principal lion was nice and polite, anyhow.”</p>
<p>“Could you not see he was only just”—she sought
for a word—“dallying with you?”</p>
<p>“He made me see that,” Bob confessed rather
gloomily. “He made me feel like thirty cents. I
guess he’s got my goat. And to think I thought him a
blamed fool. I tell you I’m learning something these
days; I’m taking a course they don’t have in college,
all right.”</p>
<p>“Why do you waste time talking?” said the girl.
“Every moment is precious. Go, or you are lost.”</p>
<p>“That sounds like the stage,” replied Bob.</p>
<p>She came closer, her temperamental gaze burning.
“Will this make you serious?” she asked almost
fiercely. “I told.”</p>
<p>“Eh?”</p>
<p>“I told all,” she repeated.</p>
<p>“You did?”</p>
<p>“Yes.”</p>
<p>“When?”</p>
<p>“Last night.”</p>
<p>“Hum!” said Bob. “That makes it a little worse,
that is all.”</p>
<p>“I was mad,” she said, “at the way you—you—”</p>
<p>“I think I understand.”</p>
<p>“Why—why don’t you get angry and—”</p>
<p>“And curse you the way they do in plays?” He
laughed a little mirthlessly. “What’s the use? It
wouldn’t do any good if I dragged you around by the
hair.”</p>
<p>“It’s just that attitude of yours,” she said, breathing
hard, “that has made me perfectly furious.”</p>
<p>“Who’d you tell?” Bob eyed her contemplatively.</p>
<p>“Lord Stan—The monocle-man, as you call him.”</p>
<p>“Whew!” Bob whistled. “You went straight to
headquarters, didn’t you?”</p>
<p>“He came up to me on the porch just after you
had left, and—and—”</p>
<p>“It’s quite plain,” said Bob gently. “You couldn’t
hold in. Don’t know as I ought to blame you much.”</p>
<p>“I wish you wouldn’t act like that,” she returned
passionately. “Don’t you hate me?”</p>
<p>He looked at her from his superior height. “No.
Now that I think of it, you only did the right and
moral thing. After all”—he seemed to be speaking
from the hammer-thrower’s high judicial plane—“it
was your duty to tell.”</p>
<p>“Duty!” she shot back at him. “I didn’t do it for
that, or”—with sudden scorn—“because it was the
moral thing. I did it because—because you—you had
hurt me and—and I wanted to hurt you the worst
way—the very worst way I could—”</p>
<p>“Well, that sounds very human,” replied Bob
soothingly. “It’s the old law. Eye for an eye! Tit
for tat! <em>Quid pro quo!</em>” That hammer-thrower
was getting him into the Latin habit.</p>
<p>“You must not speak like that. You <em>must</em> hate
me—despise me—I betrayed you—betrayed—”</p>
<p>Bob looked at her sympathetically. She really was
suffering. “Oh, no, you didn’t. You only thought
you did,” he said.</p>
<p>“I did! I did! And afterward I felt like Salome
with the head of John the Baptist.”</p>
<p>Bob twisted his handsome head and lifted a hand
to his neck. “Well, it’s really not so bad as that,” he
returned in a tone intended to be consoling. “Anyhow,
it’s very brave of you to come and tell me
about it.”</p>
<p>“Brave!” she scoffed, the temperamental breast rising.
“Why, I just blurted it all right out—how I discovered
you in my room—how I turned on the light
and how you dropped the brooch to the floor!”</p>
<p>For a few moments both were silent. Then Bob
spoke: “How’d it be, if we called bygones, bygones,
and just be friends?” he said gravely. “Honestly, I
believe I could like you an awful lot as a friend.”</p>
<p>“Don’t!” she said hoarsely. “Or—or I can’t hold
in. My! but you are good.”</p>
<p>“Isn’t that the sound of music?” said Bob suddenly.</p>
<p>“I—I believe it is.”</p>
<p>“A tango, by jove! Think of tangoing right after
breakfast! Some one <em>is</em> beginning early. What are
we coming to in these degenerate days?” Bob wanted
to take her thoughts off that other disagreeable subject.
His own sudden and unexpected appearance had, no
doubt, been quite upsetting to those other guests. That
tango music had a wild irresponsible sound, as if the
some one who was banging the concert-grand in the
big music salon was endeavoring to turn the general
trend of fancy into more symphonious channels. He,
or she, was a musical good Samaritan. Bob held out
a ceremonious arm to the temperamental young thing.
“Shall we?” he said. “Why not?”</p>
<p>“You mean—?”</p>
<p>“Tango with me? That is, if you are not above
tangoing with a—”</p>
<p>She slipped an uncertain little hand on his arm.</p>
<p>“It may be my last, for a long time,” he said gaily.
“While we live, let us live.”</p>
<p>But when they entered they saw it was the man
with the monocle who sat at the big, wonderfully
carved piano. His fingers were fairly flying; his face
was a bit more twisted up to keep the monocle from
falling off, while he was flinging his hands about over
the keys. At sight of him, the temperamental little
thing breathed quickly and would have drawn back,
but Bob drew her forward. The monocle-man’s face
did not change as he glanced over his shoulder to regard
them; he had a faculty for hitting the right keys
without looking. Bob put a big reassuring arm about
a slim waist. He tangoed only to show the temperamental
little thing that he forgave her. But her feet
were not so light as ordinarily and the dance rather
dragged. Once Bob looked down; why, she wasn’t
much bigger than a child.</p>
<p>“Friends?” he asked.</p>
<p>Her little hand clutched tighter for answer, and
the monocle-man played more madly. It was as if
he were making the puppets fly around while he pulled
the strings. He seemed having the best kind of a
time. There was now a whimsical look in his eyes
as they followed Bob.</p>
<p>That was one of the longest days Bob ever knew.
The temperamental thing had told him they were coming
to arrest him. Well, why didn’t they? His appearing
unexpectedly on the spot like that may have
caused them to change their minds. He included in
the “them” Mrs. Ralston and her niece and he could
only conclude they all meant to “dally” with him, in
Miss Dolly’s phraseology, a little longer. But surely
they had enough evidence to go right ahead and let
justice (?) take its course. What the temperamental
little thing had confessed would be quite sufficient in
itself, for their purpose.</p>
<p>Bob began to get impatient; he didn’t like being
“dallied” with. In his desperate mood, he desired to
meet the issue at once and since “it” was bound to
happen, he wanted it to happen right off. Then he
would robustly proclaim his innocence—aye, and fight
for it with all his might. He was in a fighting mood.</p>
<p>Mrs. Ralston’s demeanor toward him—when in the
natural order of events he was obliged to meet that
lady—added to his feeling of utter helplessness. She,
like the monocle-man, acted as if nothing had happened,
seeming to see nothing extraordinary or surprising
in his being there. She treated him just as
if he hadn’t been away and talked in the most natural
manner about the weather or other commonplace topics.
She was graciousness itself, even demanding
playfully if he hadn’t thought of any more French
compliments?</p>
<p>Bob stammered he had not. The fact that Miss
Gerald was near and overheard all they said didn’t
add to his mental composure. Gwendoline’s violet
eyes had such a peculiar look. Bob hoped and prayed
she would preserve that manner of cold and haughty
aloofness. He wouldn’t have exchanged a word with
her now for all the world, if he had had any choice in
the matter. Did she divine his inward shrinking from
any further talk with her? Did she realize she was
the one especial person Bob didn’t want to converse
with, under the circumstances? It may be she did so
realize; also, that she deliberately sought to add to his
discomfiture. Possibly, she felt no punishment could
be too great for one who had sunk so low as he had.</p>
<p>At any rate, the day was yet young when, like a
proud princess, she stood suddenly before him. Bob
had taken refuge in that summer-house where she had
proposed (ha! ha!) to him. He had been noting that
Mrs. Ralston seemed to have several new gardeners
working for her and it had flashed across his mind
that these gardeners were of the monocle-man type.
They were imitation gardeners. One kept a furtive eye
on Bob. He was under surveillance. Now he could understand
why the monocle-man let him flutter this
way and that, with seeming unconcern. Oh, he was
being dallied with, sure enough! That monocle-man
was argus-eyed. Bob had had a sample of his cleverness
at the breakfast-table.</p>
<p>Miss Gerald’s shadow fell abruptly at Bob’s feet.
He saw it before he saw her—a radiant, accusing patrician
presence. The girl carried a golf stick, but
there was no caddy in sight.</p>
<p>“Mr. Bennett,” said Miss Gerald, with customary
directness, “do you know who poisoned my aunt’s
dog?”</p>
<p>Bob scrambled to his feet awkwardly. Her loveliness
alone was enough to embarrass him. “No,” he
said.</p>
<p>“He was poisoned that night you left,” she said,
and went on studying him.</p>
<p>Bob pondered heavily. If the dog had been killed
with a golf stick for example, he might have been to
blame. “You are sure he was poisoned?” he asked
with an effort.</p>
<p>“Certainly.” In surprise.</p>
<p>“Well, I didn’t do it,” said Bob.</p>
<p>“Were you in any way responsible for it?” She
stood like an angel of the flaming sword in the doorway,
where the sunlight framed her figure. She
rather intoxicated poor Bob.</p>
<p>“Not to my knowledge,” he said. Of course the
commodore might have poisoned the dog, but it was
unlikely. Probably that inside-operator, or his
outside pal had “done the deed.” A dog would be in
their way.</p>
<p>Miss Gerald considered. “There is another question
I should like to ask you, Mr. Bennett,” she said
presently.</p>
<p>“Go on,” returned Bob, with dark forebodings.</p>
<p>“Are you a sleep-walker?”</p>
<p>“No.”</p>
<p>“Then why do you go wandering around nights
when every one else has retired? Last night, for example?”</p>
<p>“So that hammer-thrower told you, did he?” remarked
Bob. “I thought he would.”</p>
<p>“Do you blame him?”</p>
<p>“Oh, I suppose it was his duty.” Every one seemed
“telling” on Bob just at present.</p>
<p>“You do not deny it?”</p>
<p>“Why should I?”</p>
<p>“Then we may accept his version of the story?”</p>
<p>“Yes. I presume it was correct.”</p>
<p>Again Miss Gerald remained thoughtful and Bob
glanced out toward the gardeners. One of them seemed
to have edged nearer. Bob smiled a little glumly.
After having caught him in the web, the spiders were
now winding the strands around and around him.
Spiders do that when they don’t want to devour their
victim right off. They mummify the victim, as it
were, and tuck him away for the morrow.</p>
<p>“Why”—the accusing presence was again speaking—“did
you go down-stairs that first night of your
arrival, after all the household had retired?”</p>
<p>Bob would have given a great deal not to answer
that, but he had to. “I was showing some people
out.”</p>
<p>“Your accomplices?”</p>
<p>“They might be called that.” Miserably. He
wouldn’t “give away” Dan and the others, unless he
had to—unless truth compelled him to designate them
by name as his accomplices.</p>
<p>“Are you aware, Mr. Bennett, of the seriousness
of your answer?”</p>
<p>“Yes, I know. But how did you know—that I
went down-stairs?”</p>
<p>“I thought I heard some one go down. And then
I got up and you went by my door, and I looked out,
ever so quietly. You went in Dolly’s room and she
woke up and caught you trying to take her brooch.”</p>
<p>Bob was silent. What was the use of talking?</p>
<p>“Well, why don’t you speak?”</p>
<p>“It is true I went in Miss Dolly’s room, but I
thought it was my room,” said Bob monotonously.
“It was a mistake.” And Bob told how the brooch
happened to fall to the floor. Strange to say, truth
didn’t ring in his accents. He hadn’t much confidence
at that moment in the old saw that truth is mighty
and will prevail. Truth wasn’t mighty; it was a
monster that sucked your heart’s blood. And Bob
gazed once more with that famished look upon Miss
Gerald. He found her a joy to the eye. Though
she stood in a practical pose, the curves of her gracious
and proud young figure were like ardent lines of
poetry in a matutinal and passionate hymn to beauty.
And Bob’s lips straightway yearned to sing hexameters
to loveliness in the abstract—and in the flesh—instead
of plodding along half-heartedly through unconvincing
and purposeless explanations.</p>
<p>“You certainly do look fine to-day!” burst from
Bob. It wasn’t exactly a hexameter nor yet an iambic
mode of expression. But it had to come out.</p>
<p>Roses blossomed on the girl’s proud cheek. Bob’s
explosive and uncontrollable ardency would have been
disconcerting, under any circumstances, but under
such as those of the present—Miss Gerald’s eyes
flashed.</p>
<p>“Isn’t—isn’t that rather irrelevant?” she said after
a moment’s pause.</p>
<p>“I—yes, I guess it is,” confessed Bob, and his head
slowly fell. He looked at the hard marble pavement.</p>
<p>A moment the girl stood with breast stirring, like
an indignant goddess. “Have you—have you any information
to volunteer?” she said at length icily.</p>
<p>“Oh, I don’t have to volunteer,” answered Bob.
And then rushed on to a Niagara of disaster. “Why
don’t you ask that hammer-thrower? I suppose you’d
believe <em>anything</em>”—he couldn’t keep back the bitter
jealousy—“he tells you.”</p>
<p>An instant eyes met eyes. Bob’s now were stubborn,
if forlorn and miserable. They braved the indignant,
outraged violet ones. He even laughed, savagely,
moodily. What would he not have given if she
would only believe him, instead of—? But it was
not to be. Yet this girl had his very soul. His
miserable and forlorn eyes told her that. Whose eyes
would have turned first, in that visual contest is a matter
of uncertainty, for just then the enthusiastic voice
of Gee-gee was heard “through the land.”</p>
<p>“Why, Mr. Bennett—you here? So glad to see
you!”</p>
<p>Bob forgot all about heroics. Gee-gee drifted in
as if she were greeting an old and very dear friend,
instead of a casual acquaintance, upon whom, indeed,
she had rather forced herself, on a certain memorable
evening. Bob wilted. When he recovered a little,
Miss Gerald was gone. Below them the gardener who
had caught Bob’s eye now drew a bit nearer. Bob
turned on Gee-gee.</p>
<h1 id='t7167'>CHAPTER XVII—A GOOD DEAL OF GEE-GEE</h1>
<p>“See here,” he said rather savagely, “this has got
to stop.”</p>
<p>Gee-gee stared. “Bless its little heart, what is it
talking about?”</p>
<p>“You know,” said Bob. The fact that he now saw
Gwendoline Gerald rejoined afar by the hammer-thrower
did not improve his temper.</p>
<p>“Pardon me,” returned Gee-gee, tossing her auburn
hair, “if I fail to connect. Mrs. Ralston has been
good enough to treat us as her regular guests. And,
indeed, why shouldn’t she?” With much dignity.
“But if you feel I ain’t good enough to speak to your
Lord Highmightiness, except at stage doors and alleys
and roof gardens—” Cuttingly.</p>
<p>“This isn’t a question of social amenities,” said Bob.
Gee-gee didn’t know what “amenities” meant and that
made <em>her</em> madder. “You’ve come down here to raise
a regular hornet’s nest.”</p>
<p>Gee-gee sat down. She was so mad she had to do
something. She wanted to slap Bob’s face, but she
couldn’t do that. As Mrs. Ralston’s guest she couldn’t
give way to her natural and primitive impulses. Her
gown, modishly tight all over, strained almost to bursting
point; it seemed to express the state of her feelings.
A high-heeled shoe, encasing a pink-stockinged
foot, agitated itself like a flag in a gale.</p>
<p>“I like that,” she gasped. “And who are you to
talk to me like that? Maybe you think this is a rehearsal.”</p>
<p>“For argument’s sake, I’ll own I’m not much account
just at present,” said Bob. “Be that as it may,
I’m going to try to stop the mischief you are up to,
if I can.” He didn’t know how he would stop it;
he was talking more to draw Gee-gee out than for
any other purpose. Bob’s own testimony, as to certain
occurrences on that memorable roof-garden evening,
wouldn’t amount to much. The lawyers could
impeach it even if they let him (Bob) testify at all
in those awful divorce cases that were pending. But
they probably wouldn’t let him take the witness-stand
if he was a prisoner. Bob didn’t know quite what
was the law governing the admissibility of testimony
in a case like his.</p>
<p>Gee-gee shifted her mental attitude. She was getting
her second breath and caution whispered to her
to control herself. This handsome young gentleman
had been the most indifferent member of the quartet
on that inauspicious occasion on the roof; indeed, he
had yawned in the midst of festivities. Bob, in love,
cared not for show-girls or ponies. He had even
tried to discourage Dan and the others in their zest
for innocent enjoyment. Gee-gee now eyed Bob more
critically. As a young-man-sure-of-himself, he had
impressed her on that other occasion! Instinct had
told her to avoid Bob and select Dan. Now that same
instinct told her it might be better to temporize with
this blunt-speaking young gentleman—to “sound” him.</p>
<p>“You sure have got me floating,” observed Gee-gee
in more lady-like accents. “I’m way up in the air.
Throw out a few sand-bags and let’s hit the earth.”</p>
<p>“That’s easy,” said Bob. “Do you deny you’re
down here to raise Ned?”</p>
<p>“Do I deny it?” remarked Gee-gee with flashing
eyes. “Do I? We are down here to fill a little professional
engagement. We are down here on account
of our histrionic talents.” A sound came from Bob’s
throat. Gee-gee professed not to notice it. “We are
paid a fee—not a small one—to come down here, to
do privately our little turn which was the hit of the
piece and the talk of Broadway.”</p>
<p>“Bosh!” said Bob coolly. Gee-gee looked dangerous.
Once more the pink-stockinged ankle began to
swing agitatedly, and again reckless Bob narrowly
escaped a slap in the face. “Mrs. Dan and Mrs.
Clarence got Mrs. Ralston to ask you down here,” he
went on. “You weren’t asked on account of your
histrionic ability. You were asked because it was the
only feasible way to get you beyond other strong, I
may even say desperate, and to them, inimical influences.
Mrs. Ralston isn’t the only one who is financing
your little rural expedition. I guess you know
what I mean?”</p>
<p>“Nix!” said Gee-gee. “You’ve got me up in the
air again. Turn the little wheel around and let the
car come down. This ain’t Sunday, and if I was taking
a little Coney-Island treat, I wouldn’t choose you
for my escort.”</p>
<p>“It certainly isn’t Sunday in the sense of a day of
rest,” remarked Bob gloomily. By this time the hammer-man
and Miss Gerald were beyond his range of
vision. But he would not think of them; he must
not. He had a duty to perform here; maybe it would
do no good, but it was his duty to try. “That publicity
racket is all right up to a certain point,” he said,
bending his reproachful eyes upon Gee-gee. “But
when it comes to smashing reputations, stretching the
truth, and injuring others irreparably—all for a little
cheap nauseating notoriety—Well”—Bob hit straight
from the shoulder—“I tell you it’s rotten. And I,
for one, shall do what I can to show up the whole conspiracy.
That’s what it is. It would be different if
you were going to tell what was so, but you aren’t.
It isn’t in the cards.”</p>
<p>“I don’t know what you’re talking about.” Gee-gee’s
tight dress nearly exploded now. The blood
had receded from her face and left it a mottled cream
while her greenish eyes glowed like opals. Her expression
was animalistic. It seemed to say she would
like to crush something beneath those high heels and
grind them into it.</p>
<p>“Yes, you do,” said Bob. “And it will be a frame-up
for poor old Dan and Clarence, too!” Dickie’s
description of what was going to happen recurred
to him poignantly. “I tell you it’s a wicked cruel thing
to do. I repeat, it’s rotten.”</p>
<p>If he thought he could overwhelm Gee-gee by a display
of superior masculine strength and moral force,
he was mistaken. Gee-gee wasn’t that kind of a girl.
She had some force herself, though whether of the
moral kind is another matter.</p>
<p>“‘Wicked!’ ‘Rotten!’ ‘Cheap!’” she repeated
slowly, but breathing hard. “Listen to the infant!
‘Rotten!’” She lingered on the word as if it had a
familiar sound. “Well, what is life, anyhow?” she
flung out suddenly at the six-foot “infant.” “Maybe
you think this theater business is like going
to Sunday-school—that
all we have to do is to hold goody-goody
hands and sing those salvation songs! Salvation! Gee!”
And Gee-gee folded her arms. She seemed to meditate.
“You know what kind of salvation a girl gets
down on old Broadway?” she scoffed. “Aren’t the men
nice and kind? Don’t they take you by the hand and
say: ‘Come on, little girl, I’ll give you a helping
hand.’ Oh, yes, they give you a helping hand. But
it isn’t ‘up.’ It’s all ‘down.’ And every one wants to
see how deep they can make it. Say, Infant, I was
born in one of those avenues with letters. People
like these”—looking toward the house—“don’t know
nothing about that kind of an avenue. It ought to
be called a rotten alley. That’s where I learned what
‘rotten’ meant. Nice young gentlemen like you who
toddled about with nursie in the park can’t tell <em>me</em>.”</p>
<p>Bob tried not to look small; he endeavored to maintain
his dignity. He was almost sorry he had got
Gee-gee started. The conversation was leading into
unexpected channels. “Why, I toddled about in
rottenness,” went on Gee-gee. “Gutters were my playground.”
Dreamily. She seemed to be forgetting
her resentment in these childhood recollections.
“Sometimes I slept in cellar doorways, with the rotten
cabbages all around. But they and all the rest of the
spoiled things seemed to agree with me. I’ve thrived
on rottenness, Infant!” Bob winced. “It’s all that
some girls get. Men!” And Gee-gee laughed. Here
was a topic she could dilate on. Again the opal eyes
gleamed tigerishly. “I’ve got a lot of cause to love
’em. Oh, ain’t they particular about <em>their</em> reputations!”
Gee-gee’s chuckle was fiendish. “Poor,
precious little dears! Be careful and don’t get a teeny
speck of smudge on their snowy white wings! My!
look out! don’t splash ’em! Or, if you do, rub it off
quick so the people in church won’t see it. But when
it comes to us”—Gee-gee showed her teeth. “I
learned when I was in the gutter that I had to fight.
Sometimes I had to fight with dogs for a crust. Sometimes
with boys who were worse still. Later, with
men who were worst of all. And,” said Gee-gee, again
tossing her auburn mane, “I’m still fighting, Infant!”</p>
<p>“Which means,” said Bob slowly, overlooking these
repeated insults to his dignity, “you aren’t here just
to exhibit those histrionic talents you talked about?”</p>
<p>Gee-gee laughed. She was feeling better-natured
now that she had relieved herself by speaking of some
of those “wrongs” she and her sex had undoubtedly
to endure. There were times when Gee-gee just had
to moralize; it was born in her to do so. And she
liked particularly to grill the men, and after the
grilling—usually to the receptive and sympathetic
Gid-up—she particularly liked, also, to go out and
angle for one. And after he had taken the hook—the
deeper the better—Gee-gee dearly loved the piscatorial
sport that came later, of watching the rushes,
the wild turnings, the frenzied leaps.</p>
<p>She even began to eye the infant now with sleepy
green eyes. But no hook for him! He wasn’t hungry.
He wouldn’t even smell of a bait. Gee-gee felt
this, having quite an instinct in such matters. Perhaps
experience, too, had helped make her a good
fisherwoman. So she didn’t even bother making any
casts for Bob. But she answered him sweetly enough,
having now recovered her poise and being more sure
of her ground:</p>
<p>“It doesn’t mean anything of the sort. Our act
has been praised in a number of the newspapers, I
would have you understand.”</p>
<p>“All right,” said Bob, as strenuously as he was
capable of speaking. “I only wanted you to know
that between you and me it will be—fight!”</p>
<p>This was sheer bluff, but he thought it might deter
Gee-gee a little. It might curb just a bit that lurid
imagination of hers.</p>
<p>Gee-gee got up now, laughing musically. Also, she
showed once more her white teeth. Then she stretched
somewhat robust arms.</p>
<p>“Fight with you?” she scoffed. “Why, you can’t
fight, Infant! You haven’t grown up yet.”</p>
<p>Bob had the grace to blush and Gee-gee, about to
depart, noticed it. He looked fresh and big and nice
to her at that moment, so nice, indeed, that suddenly
she did throw out a bait—one of her most brilliant
smiles, supplemented by a speaking, sleepy glance.
But Bob didn’t see the bait. He was like a fish in a
pool too deep for her line. Gee-gee shrugged; then
she walked away. Snip! That imitation gardener
was now among the vines, right underneath where
Bob was sitting.</p>
<hr class='tb'/>
<p>Gee-gee’s little act was better than Bob expected
it would be. She sang a French song with no more
vulgarity than would mask as piquancy and the men
applauded loudly. Gee-gee was a success. Gid-up
put hers “over,” too; then together they did a few
new dances not ungracefully. Mrs. Dan’s face was
rather a study. She was an extremist on the sex question
and would take the woman’s side against the man
every time. Theoretically, she would invite injured
innocence right into camp. She reversed that old humbug
saying, “The woman did tempt me;” according
to her philosophy, man, being naturally not so good
as a woman, was entitled to shoulder the bulk of the
blame. But when she looked at Gee-gee she may have
had her doubts.</p>
<p>She may even have regretted being instrumental
in bringing her here at all. And it is not unlikely
that Mrs. Clarence may have entertained a few secret
regrets also, and doubts as to the application of a
broad-minded big way of looking at certain things
pertaining to her own sex, when she beheld her of
the saucy turned-up nose and brazen freckle.
Certain it is, both Mrs. Dan and Mrs. Clarence looked
more serious and thoughtful than jubilant. They
didn’t applaud; they just seemed to, bringing their
hands together without making a noise. But both
ladies were now committed to the inevitable. Gee-gee
and Gid-up, displaying their “histrionic talents,”
were but calculated to make Mrs. Dan and Mrs. Clarence
the more determined to pursue the matter to the
bitter end. Among the guests now was a certain
legal light. His presence there at this particular
time—when the two G’s adorned the festivities—might
be a mere coincidence; on the other hand it might
signify much. He had certainly spent a long time
that afternoon talking to Gee-gee and Gid-up. Mrs.
Dan and Mrs. Clarence came in contact with them
only by proxy.</p>
<p>Bob was a deeply pained spectator of the wordless
drama that was being enacted. He, alone, besides
those directly involved, knew the tragedy lurking
behind the mocking face of comedy. That gay music
sounded to Bob like a fugue. He could well believe
what it was costing Mrs. Dan and Mrs. Clarence to
attain their purpose. They weren’t enjoying themselves.
It was altogether a miserable business, and
almost made Bob forget his own tragedy. A little
incident, however, brought the latter once more vividly
to mind.</p>
<p>It occurred while Gee-gee, in answer to applause
at the conclusion of her dance with Gid-up, was singing
another of those risque, French cafe chantant
songs. Bob sat next to the temperamental little thing
who was behaving with exemplary consistency. She
had been comporting herself in strictly comrade-fashion
ever since their last talk, not once overdoing the
little chum act. She hadn’t asked him for a single
kiss or to put his arm about her waist in dark corners.
Perhaps she was too anxious on his account for sentimental
considerations. She couldn’t understand the
way things were going—that is, things pertaining to
Bob.</p>
<p>“Why <em>don’t</em> they?” once she whispered to Bob.</p>
<p>He knew what she meant—arrest him? He shook
his head. “Dallying,” he answered.</p>
<p>“I could just scratch his eyes out,” she murmured
with excess of loyalty.</p>
<p>“Whose?”</p>
<p>“That monocle-man. You know what I did this afternoon?”</p>
<p>“No.” Bob, however, surmised it would be something
interesting.</p>
<p>“I went up to that monocle-man and told him every
word I had said to him the night before wasn’t so.”</p>
<p>“You did?” Staring at her.</p>
<p>“Yes, I did.” Setting her cherry lips firmly. “I
told him I was just trying to fool him and that I
would never—never—never testify to such rubbish, if
called on to do so.”</p>
<p>“But you’ll have to,” said Bob. “You’ve got to tell
the truth.”</p>
<p>“I’d tell whoppers by the bushel to help you,” she
confided to him unblushingly. “That’s the kind of a
friend I am.”</p>
<p>“But I wouldn’t have you. I wouldn’t let you,”
he murmured in mild consternation. “Great Scott!
they’d have you up for perjury.”</p>
<p>“Oh, no, they wouldn’t. I’d do it so cleverly.”</p>
<p>“But the monocle-man would testify, too.”</p>
<p>“Who do you think a jury would rather believe,
me or him?” she demanded confidently. “Especially
if I was all dressed up and looked at them, all the time
I was testifying.”</p>
<p>“Well,” said Bob, “I don’t believe you could do
it, anyhow. Besides, it would be stretching friendship
too far. Though you’re a jolly little pal to offer
to!” She hunched a dainty little shoulder against his
strong arm.</p>
<p>“I’d go through fire and water for you,” breathed
the jolly little pal.</p>
<p>“It’s fine of you to say it,” answered Bob fervently.
“I haven’t many friends now, you know. But—but
it’s impossible, what you propose. It would only get
you into trouble. I’d be a big brute to allow that. It
would make me out a fine pal, wouldn’t it? Besides,
it wouldn’t do any good. Some one else heard me
go into your room and knows all about it. Some
one else would fortify what the monocle-man would
tell. And her testimony and his would overwhelm
yours. And I’d never forgive myself for your being
made a victim of your own loyalty.”</p>
<p>“Was that some one else Miss Gerald?” asked the
jolly little pal quickly.</p>
<p>“Yes,” said Bob. As he spoke he glanced toward
Miss Gerald.</p>
<p>Gee-gee had now started to sing and nearly every
one’s head was turned toward the vivacious vocalist.
Bob saw Miss Gerald’s proud profile. He saw, too,
the hammer-thrower, next to her, as usual. On the
other side of the hammer-thrower—the side nearer
where Gee-gee stood—was the lady who had given
Bob the “cold shoulder” a few nights ago at dinner.
The hammer-thrower’s eyes were naturally turned
toward that cold shoulder now, and, as naturally, his
gaze should have been bent over it, toward the vocal
center of attraction for the moment.</p>
<p>But his gaze had stopped at the shoulder, or something
on it. Bob noted that look. For a fraction of
a minute, or second, it revealed a sudden new odd
intensity as it rested on a lovely string of pearls ornamenting
the cold shoulder. And at the same instant
a wave of light seemed to sweep over Bob. For that
fraction of a minute he seemed strangely, amazingly,
to have been afforded a swift glimpse into a soul.</p>
<p>The whole thing was psychic. Bob couldn’t have
told just how he came to know. But he knew. He
was sure now who had taken Mrs. Vanderpool’s
brooch. Strangely, too, the hammer-thrower, after
that fraction of a second’s relaxation of vigilance over
his inner secret self, should have turned and looked
straight toward Bob. His look was now heavy, normal.
Bob’s was burning.</p>
<p>“You!” his eyes said as plainly as if he had called
out the word.</p>
<p>The hammer-thrower’s face did not change in the
least; nor did his look. He turned his eyes toward
the singer with heavy nonchalance and never had his
face appeared more honest and trustworthy.</p>
<p>“Oh, you beauty!” murmured Bob admiringly.</p>
<p>“Do you really think she is?” asked the jolly little
pal. She thought Bob meant Gee-gee. “Is that the
style you like?”</p>
<p>“Thinking of something else,” said Bob.</p>
<p>“Some one, you mean?” with slight reproach.</p>
<p>“Pals aren’t jealous,” he reminded her. “Besides,
it was a man.”</p>
<p>“Oh!” she said wonderingly.</p>
<p class='line' style='text-align:center;'>“For life is but a game of hide-and-seek,”</p>
<p>sang Gee-gee, in the rather execrable French some
one had drilled into her.</p>
<p>“Come and catch me,” was the refrain.</p>
<p>Bob shook his head. He didn’t want to play at that
game. But life was a game of hide-and-seek, all
right. He permitted himself the luxury of smiling
as he once more looked over at the hammer-thrower
and applauded Gee-gee. Odd, the idea of the hammer-thrower
being that person he (Bob) was supposed
to be, had never occurred to the latter! But
no one ever would suspect that face! “My face is
my fortune, sir,” he might have said. The hammer-thrower
caught Bob’s smile.</p>
<p>“‘Come and catch me,’” reiterated Gee-gee.</p>
<p>That might be applicable to the hammer-thrower.
Bob, for the moment, felt as happy as a child who has
discovered the solution of a puzzle. So that when
Miss Gerald deigned casually to glance at him, she
was surprised at his new expression. It seemed a
long while since Bob had looked happy, but now he
looked almost like his old self. Was it the near presence
of the temperamental young thing that had
wrought this change, Miss Gerald might well have
asked herself.</p>
<p>Violet eyes looked now into temperamental dark
ones. Gwendoline, too, was smiling—at the song.
But it was that cryptic kind of a smile once more.
Bob’s smile was a rather large cryptic counterpart of
Miss Gerald’s. The temperamental little thing, though,
didn’t smile. She seemed reading Miss Gerald’s soul.
She was dropping a plumb-line deep down into it.</p>
<p>Then Miss Gerald turned again to the hammer-thrower,
who talked to her just as if Bob hadn’t seen
anything, or imagined he had. Gee-gee sat down, at
the same time condescending to bestow upon Bob a
triumphal look. He had dared to scoff at her histrionic
talent, had he? Well, she had shown him—and
them. Maybe with a little publicity, she would become
a star of dazzling magnitude. At that moment,
the world looked bright to Gee-gee.</p>
<h1 id='t7656'>CHAPTER XVIII—A FORMIDABLE ADVERSARY</h1>
<p>What a merry mad wag that hammer-thrower
really must be at heart! thought Bob. How
he was chuckling inside, or laughing in his sleeve most
of the time while he went around with that heavy,
serious, reliable visage of his! And that ponderous
manner?—What lively little imps of mischief or fancy
it concealed! That simulated slow tread, too?—Bob
surmised he could get around pretty fast on occasions,
if he wanted to, or had to. He was dancing
very seriously with Miss Gerald now, seeming to take
dancing as a kind of a moral lesson. Oh, that “duty
talk” to Bob! He would “consider” Bob’s case!—He
wanted to ponder over it—he? And how painfully
in earnest he had been when he had sprung what his
father had said about not giving a fellow a shove when
he was down!</p>
<p>Bob disentangled himself as soon as he could from
the temperamental little thing and went into the billiard
room, where he began to toy with the ivories. If
there was one thing he could do, it was play billiards.
But he retired to the seclusion of the billiard room
now principally for the reason that he expected the
hammer-thrower would follow him there. He felt
almost sure the other would seek him. So, though
Bob proceeded to execute one or two fancy shots with
much skill, his thoughts were not on the ivories. He
was considering his position in relation to the hammer-thrower.
He (Bob) might entertain a profound
conviction regarding the latter’s profession, but could
he prove anything?</p>
<p>True, he now remembered and could point out that
the latter had attended all those functions where losses
had occurred. But that wasn’t in itself particularly
significant. Other people, also, had attended all the
functions in question. Bob couldn’t even actually
swear he had seen the other in his room when he had
dropped something from Bob’s window to some one
lurking below. Bob hadn’t had the chance to recognize
him on that occasion. As far as evidence went,
the “boot was all on the other leg.” The hammer-thrower
was obviously in a position to use Bob to pull
chestnuts out of the fire for him.</p>
<p>But why had he not denounced Bob to the entire
household, then and there, when he had discovered
him before Gee-gee’s door? Perhaps the hammer-thrower
didn’t yet know that any one knew there had
been substituted one or two imitation articles of jewelry
for real ones. If this were so, then from his
point of view a denunciation of Bob might lead to an
investigation which would reveal the fact that substitutions
had occurred and in consequence he would be
but curtailing the period of his own future activities
in this decidedly fertile field. He hadn’t, of course,
refrained through any feeling of charity or
commiseration for Bob. He had, moreover, paved the way
to use Bob in the future, if need be, by discreetly mentioning
the incident to Miss Gerald. Bob might prove
serviceable as an emergency man. All this had no
doubt been floating through the hammer-thrower’s
brain while he had stood there with that puzzled, aggrieved
and righteous expression.</p>
<p>A slight sound behind him caused Bob to turn
quickly and, as he had expected, he beheld the hammer-thrower.
Here was renewed confirmation of that
which he had just learned.</p>
<p>“I felt it my duty to inform Miss Gerald of what
occurred last night,” began the hammer-thrower without
prelude.</p>
<p>“I know that already,” said Bob, continuing his
play.</p>
<p>“Ah, then I am wasting time. But having concluded
that it was incumbent on me to take that course,
I thought it but right to come to you and tell you
what I had done. Square thing, you know.”</p>
<p>Bob grinned. “Say it in Latin,” he observed flippantly.</p>
<p>A slight frown gathered on the other’s brow. “I
really fail to understand. You placed me in an unpleasant
position. It was not easy to speak of such
a matter.”</p>
<p>“Then why did you?” said Bob lightly, executing
a difficult play.</p>
<p>“You do not seem to realize there are some things
we have to do.”</p>
<p>“Duty, eh?” observed Bob with another grin.</p>
<p>“Without wishing to pose as puritanical, or as a
prig, I may say you have hit the nail fairly on the
head.”</p>
<p>“Oh, you aren’t a prig,” said Bob. “You’re a
lu-lu.”</p>
<p>“I don’t know whether you mean to be complimentary
or not,” returned the hammer-thrower with
unvarying seriousness. “As I believe I have remarked
before, you appear totally not to comprehend your
own position. I might have awakened the house and
what would have been your status then? There have
of late been so many mysterious burglaries at large
country-houses and in the big city homes of the affluent
that a guest, found rambling about in pajamas
at unseemly hours, courts, to put it mildly, suspicion.
Anyhow, for my own protection, I had to speak to
Miss Gerald. You see that, don’t you? We’ll waive
the moral side.”</p>
<p>“‘Your own protection’ is good,” said Bob, sending
his ball twice around the table and complacently
observing the result.</p>
<p>“I mean that if it became known that I had secreted
you in my room and said nothing about it, it would,
in a measure, place me in the light of being an accomplice,”
returned the hammer-thrower, ignoring the
point in Bob’s last words. “I don’t know whether
anything will be discovered missing here or not, but
if there should be—?”</p>
<p>“Things will be discovered missing, all right,” returned
Bob. “What was that you dropped out of the
window in my room last night?”</p>
<p>The hammer-thrower stared at him. “I?—your
room?” he said at length very slowly, with the most
genuine amazement written all over his serious reliable
features.</p>
<p>“You! My room!” repeated Bob. “You didn’t
expect me to come back. I gave you quite a surprise,
didn’t I? You are certainly some sprinter.”</p>
<p>Still the hammer-thrower continued to stare.
“Mad!” he said at last. “I hardly credited it before,
but now—That private sanatorium!—No doubt, it
was best.”</p>
<p>Bob laughed. “That sanatorium fits in fine, doesn’t
it? You’ll be trying the little abduction act next,
yourself, I suppose.”</p>
<p>“I’m trying to make up my mind whether you
aren’t really a dangerous person to be at large,” said
the hammer-man heavily. “You might say something
like that to some one else. You appear absolutely irresponsible.”</p>
<p>“I might,” observed Bob tentatively. Oh, if he
only could!</p>
<p>“However, I hardly think you will,” remarked the
other in his heaviest manner. “By the way, you play
pretty good billiards.”</p>
<p>“Thanks awfully. Want to play?”</p>
<p>“Don’t mind.” And the hammer-thrower took down
a cue.</p>
<p>“I should dearly like to beat you,” said Bob in wistful
tones.</p>
<p>“And I should as dearly like not to be beaten by
you, or any one else,” returned the other.</p>
<p>“I know,” conceded Bob, not without a touch of
admiration, “you’re a great chap for winning prizes
and things. You’ve taken no end of cups, haven’t
you? I mean, legitimately.”</p>
<p>“Yes; I usually go in to win.” The other professed
not to hear Bob’s last words.</p>
<p>“And you’ve been feted some, in consequence, too,
haven’t you?” said Bob suddenly. “You were at the
Duke of Somberland’s, I remember.” Meaningly.
He remembered, too, that articles of great value had
disappeared from the duke’s place at the same time.</p>
<p>“I believe I was. Met no end of interesting people!”</p>
<p>“And weren’t you at Lord Tumford’s?” Bob recalled
reading how jewels had mysteriously vanished
in the case of Lord Tumford’s guests, also.</p>
<p>“Yes, got asked over for the shooting. Believe I
did very well for an American not accustomed to the
British method of slaughter.”</p>
<p>“No doubt,” said Bob. The hammer-thrower was
getting bigger in his way every moment. Now he had
become an operator of international importance.</p>
<p>“Speaking about winning, you were on the losing
team at college, weren’t you?” he observed significantly.</p>
<p>“Quite so!” answered Bob. “We worked awfully
hard and ought to have won, but fate, I guess, was
against us.”</p>
<p>“We,” said the hammer-man in his ponderous way,
“are fate. Arbiters of our destinies! We succeed,
or we don’t. And when we fail, it is we that fail. Fate
hasn’t anything to do with it.”</p>
<p>“Maybe you’re right,” assented Bob. “I don’t
know. Anyhow, it’s a test of true sportsmanship to
know how to lose.”</p>
<p>“Not to whine, you mean? True. But it’s better
not to lose. Now go ahead and try to beat me.”</p>
<p>Bob tried his best. He let the other name the game
and the number of points, and for a time it was nip
and tuck. Once Bob ran a string of seventy. Then
the hammer-thrower made one hundred and one. His
playing was brilliant. Some of the heaviness seemed
to have departed from his big frame. His steps
nearly matched Bob’s for litheness while his big
fingers handled the cue almost daintily. All the inner
force of the man seemed focused on the task of winning.
He had made up his mind he couldn’t lose.
Bob was equally determined, too, not to lose.</p>
<p>The game seemed symbolical of that bigger game
they were playing as adversaries, and more and more
Bob realized here was an opponent not to be despised.
He was resourceful, delicate, subtle, as he permitted
Bob now to gaze behind that shield of heaviness. He
had never before exhibited his real self at the table,
playing heretofore in ponderous fashion, but this time,
perhaps, he experienced a secret delight in tantalizing
an enemy. Those big fingers seemed capable of administering
a pretty hard squeeze when the hour arrived; they might
even not hesitate at a death-clutch.
The game now was very close.</p>
<p>“Shall we make it a thousand for the winner?” suggested
the hammer-thrower.</p>
<p>“Haven’t that much,” said Bob. “Only got about
seven dollars and a half, or so.”</p>
<p>“I’ll bet you seven dollars and a half, then.”</p>
<p>Bob accepted, and immediately had a run of luck.
He was within two points of being out. The hammer-thrower
had about fifty to go.</p>
<p>“Get that seven dollars and a half ready,” he said
easily as he began his play.</p>
<p>“Maybe I shan’t have to,” replied Bob.</p>
<p>“Yes, you will.” He spoke as one not capable of
making mistakes about what he could do. And he
didn’t make a mistake this time. He ran out. Bob
paid with as good grace as he could. Then the hammer-thrower
moved heavily away and left Bob alone.</p>
<p>The latter didn’t feel quite so jubilant now over
his secret knowledge as he had a little earlier. The
hammer-thrower had permitted him to test his
mettle—indeed, he had deliberately put himself out to do so,
and make Bob realize even more thoroughly that he
might just about as well not know anything for all the
good it would do him (Bob). His lips might as well
be sealed, as far as his being able to prove anything;
if he did speak, people would answer as the hammer-thrower
had. “Mad!” Or worse! That sanatorium
incident was certainly unfortunate.</p>
<p>Bob put his hand in his pocket to get his handkerchief
to wipe a few drops of perspiration from his
brow. He drew out his handkerchief, but he also drew
out something else—something hard—that glittered-a
ring—a beautiful one—with perfect blue white
diamonds—a ring he remembered having seen on certain
occasions adorning one of Miss Gerald’s fingers.</p>
<p>Bob stared at it. He stood like one frozen to the
spot. That hammer-man had done more than beat
him at billiards. While he (Bob) had extended a
portion of his person over the table to execute difficult
shots the other had found it an easy trick to slip
Miss Gerald’s ring in the coat-tail pocket of Bob’s
garment. Could you exceed that for diabolical intention?
Now what on earth was Bob to do with
Miss Gerald’s ring?</p>
<p>He couldn’t keep it and yet he didn’t want to throw
away her property. It seemed as if he would be
forced to, though. After an instant’s hesitation he
made up his mind that he would toss it out of the
window and then write her anonymously where it
could be found. The hammer-man hadn’t calculated
Bob would discover it on his person so soon, or perhaps
he had told himself the odds were against Bob’s
discovering it at all. He would, of course, have preferred
that others should discover it on Bob. The
latter now strode to the window; the glittering ring
seemed fairly to burn his fingers. He raised the
curtain as softly as he could—the window was already
open—and then suddenly started back.</p>
<p>The light from within, shining on the garden, revealed
to him with disconcerting abruptness a man’s
face. The man sprang back with considerable celerity,
but not before Bob had recognized in him that confounded
maniac-medico. He had tracked Bob here,
but not wishing to create a scene among Mrs. Ralston’s
guests, was no doubt waiting outside with his assistants
and the first time Bob stepped out of the house,
he expected to nab him. All the while Bob had been
playing billiards, that miserable maniac-medico had
probably been spying upon him, peeping from under
the curtain.</p>
<p>Bob moved from the window, the ring still in his
fingers, and at this inopportune moment, the monocle-man
walked in. He seemed to have timed his coming
to a nicety. Perhaps he had noticed that little episode
at the window. Bob, in a panic, thrust the ring hurriedly
into his waistcoat pocket and tried to face the
other without showing undue agitation, but he feared
guilt was written all over his countenance.</p>
<p>“Hot,” muttered Bob. “Thought a breath of fresh
air would do me good.”</p>
<p>“Quite so. We English believe in plenty of fresh
air,” returned the monocle-man, just as if he swallowed
the reason the other had given for going to the
window.</p>
<p>But after that Bob couldn’t get rid of him. It was
as if he knew something was wrong and that Bob
needed watching. He began to fool with the balls,
telling how hard it was for him to get accustomed
to these small American tables. The British game
was far better, he went on, all the while keeping his
eyes pretty closely on Bob, until the latter got desperate
and went back to where people were. But the
monocle-man went, too. By this time Bob was convinced
the other knew what was in his pocket. “Caught
with the goods!” That’s the way the yellow press
would describe his predicament.</p>
<p>“Aren’t you the regular hermit-crab?” It was the
temperamental little thing’s reproachful voice that at
this point broke in upon his sorrowful meditations,
and Bob turned to her quickly. At the moment he
was awfully glad she had come up. “What have you
been doing?” she went on.</p>
<p>“Oh, just rolling the balls. Will you dance?”
Eagerly.</p>
<p>“Can’t! Engaged. You should have asked me
sooner and not run away.” Then perhaps she saw
how disappointed Bob looked or caught that desperate
expression in his eyes, for she added: “Yes, I will.
Can say I was engaged to you first and forgot. Come
on.”</p>
<p>Bob did. He was a little afraid the monocle-man
might not let him, but the other permitted him to
dance. Perhaps he wouldn’t have done so if he had
known what was in Bob’s mind. That young man
felt as if he had now truly reached his last ditch.</p>
<p>“Say, I’m in an awful hole,” he breathed to the
temperamental little thing, as they glided over the
floor.</p>
<p>“Are you?” She snuggled closer. “Anything worse
than has been?”</p>
<p>“A heap worse! I’ve got something I simply must
get rid of.”</p>
<p>“What is it?” she said in a thrilling whisper.</p>
<p>“A ring.” Hoarsely.</p>
<p>“No. Whose?”</p>
<p>“Miss Gerald’s.” More hoarsely still.</p>
<p>“How wildly exciting! Though I didn’t think you
would rob her.” In an odd voice.</p>
<p>“I didn’t.”</p>
<p>“But you say you’ve got her ring?”</p>
<p>“Some one put it in my pocket.”</p>
<p>“Isn’t it the funny little hermit-crab, though!” she
answered.</p>
<p>“Well, never mind whether you believe me or not.
The point is, I’ve got to get rid of it and I can’t. That
monocle-man is watching me. I need help.”</p>
<p>“Mine?” Snuggling once more.</p>
<p>“Yours. Will you do it?”</p>
<p>“Didn’t I tell you I’d go through fire and water for
you? Am I not now your eternal and everlasting
chum? Say it.”</p>
<p>“What?”</p>
<p>“That jolly-little-pal talk.”</p>
<p>“Jolly little pal!” he breathed in her ear.</p>
<p>She sighed happily. “Now what do you want me
to do?”</p>
<p>“I want you to take this ring”—slipping it into her
fingers—“and return it to Miss Gerald’s room. You
can slip in without attracting any attention. Besides
no one would think anything of your going in her
room, even if you were seen doing so—you’re such
friends.”</p>
<p>“But,” she said wonderingly, “I don’t see why you
took it at all if—” She broke off—“Unless that
monocle-man knows you’ve got it on you?”</p>
<p>“That’s the point,” observed Bob hoarsely.</p>
<p>“All right,” she assented. “I’ll do it. When?”</p>
<p>“Now.”</p>
<p>“No,” she said firmly. “Not until our dance is
over. I want every bit of it. That’s—that’s my salary.
My! I feel awful wicked with that ring in my
hand. You can take a firmer hold of me if you
want—the way you did that first day! I need reassuring!”</p>
<p>Bob laughed in spite of himself, but he reassured
“jolly little pal,” in the manner indicated.</p>
<p>“Now just fly around,” she said.</p>
<p>And Bob “flew” with a recklessness that satisfied
even her. When it was over she turned to him with
an odd look.</p>
<p>“I’ve got another condition.”</p>
<p>“What is it?”</p>
<p>“That you ask Miss Gerald to dance!”</p>
<p>“But—” he began, disconcerted as well as surprised.</p>
<p>“That’s the condition.”</p>
<p>“She would only refuse.” Gloomily.</p>
<p>“Do you agree?” There was something almost
wistful in the temperamental eyes of little pal at that
moment.</p>
<p>“I—can’t.” Desperately.</p>
<p>“Very well. Take back the—”</p>
<p>“All right. I will,” Bob half-groaned.</p>
<p>As he walked over toward Gwendoline Gerald, he
saw the temperamental little thing moving toward the
stairway. Half-way up, she stopped and looked back
over the banister. Perhaps she wanted to see if Bob
was fulfilling his part of the contract.</p>
<h1 id='t8150'>CHAPTER XIX—BOB FORGETS HIMSELF</h1>
<p>“Miss Gerald,” said Bob as formally as if he
were quoting from one of those deportment
books, “may I have the pleasure of this dance?”</p>
<p>Her reply was at variance with what “How to Behave
in the Best Society” taught young ladies to say.
“Why do you ask?” said Gwendoline Gerald quietly.</p>
<p>“Got to,” said Bob.</p>
<p>“Why have you got to?”</p>
<p>“I promised I would.”</p>
<p>“Who made you promise?”</p>
<p>Bob told.</p>
<p>“Do you have to do what she tells you?”</p>
<p>“In this instance.”</p>
<p>“Of course you know what my reply will be?”</p>
<p>“I told her you would refuse.”</p>
<p>“You would hardly expect me to dance with you
after all I know about you, would you?” There was
still that deadly quietness in her tones.</p>
<p>“All you think you know about me,” Bob had the
courage to correct her. “Of course not.”</p>
<p>“Some one has taken one of my rings,” observed
Miss Gerald even more quietly.</p>
<p>“I haven’t got it,” exclaimed Bob. “Honest!”
Wasn’t he glad he had got rid of it?</p>
<p>The violet eyes studied Bob as if he were something
strange and inanimate—an odd kind of a pebble or
a shell. “You are sure?” said Miss Gwendoline.</p>
<p>“Positive,” answered Bob in his most confident
tones. He remembered now that during his dance
with the jolly little pal he had observed the monocle-man
talking with Miss Gerald. Perhaps he had told
her he had seen the ring in Bob’s fingers when the
latter had gone to the window. The monocle-man
might have been spying all the while, on the other
side. There might have been two Peeping Toms interested
in Bob’s actions in the billiard room.</p>
<p>“Are you so positive you would be willing to submit
to be searched?”</p>
<p>“I am that positive,” Bob answered. And then
went on more eagerly: “Maybe you haven’t really
lost it after all.” He could say that and still tell the
truth. “Why, it may be in your room now. You may
find it on your table or your dresser when you go upstairs
to retire.”</p>
<p>Miss Gerald looked at him. “You seem to be
rather certain?” she said tentatively.</p>
<p>“I am,” said Bob. “I’d almost swear—” He
stopped suddenly. It wouldn’t do to be too certain.</p>
<p>“Don’t you find your own words rather strange?”
the girl asked.</p>
<p>“Everything’s funny about me, nowadays,” said
Bob.</p>
<p>“Did you enjoy renewing your acquaintance with
Miss ——?” She called Gee-gee by that other, more
conventional name.</p>
<p>“I did not. I dislike her profoundly.”</p>
<p>“Are you sure?” The violet eyes were almost meditative.
“Now I should have thought—” She paused.
Bob read the thought, however. A man like him was
on a plane with Gee-gee; indeed, much lower. Miss
Gerald would be finding in Gee-gee Bob’s affinity next.</p>
<p>“You haven’t refused me out-and-out, yet,” he suggested.
“To dance, I mean.”</p>
<p>“You would rather, of course, I did refuse you?”</p>
<p>“Of course,” Bob stammered. The mere thought
of dancing with her once again as of yore gave him
a sensation of exquisite pain. But naturally she would
never dream of dancing with one she considered a—?</p>
<p>“Well, you may have the pleasure,” she said mockingly.</p>
<p>Bob could not credit his hearing. She would permit
him to touch her. Incredible! A great awe fell over
him. He could not believe.</p>
<p>“I said you might have the pleasure,” she repeated,
accenting in the least the last word.</p>
<p>Bob caught that accent. Ah, she knew then, what
exquisite pain it would be for him to dance with her!
She was purposely punishing him; she wished to make
him suffer. She would drive a gimlet in his heart
and turn it around. Bob somehow got his arm about
his divinity and found himself floating around the
room, experiencing that dual sensation of being in
heaven and in the other place at one and the same time.</p>
<p>It was a weird and wonderful dance. Through it
all he kept looking down at her hair, though its brightness
seemed to dazzle him. Miss Dolly had confided
to Bob that he “guided divinely,” but he didn’t guide
divinely now; he was too bewildered. Once he
bumped his divinity into some one and this did not
improve his mental condition. But she bore with him
with deadly patience; she was bound to punish him
thoroughly, it seemed.</p>
<p>Then that dual sensation in Bob’s breast began
gradually to partake more of heaven than of the other
place, and he yielded to the pure and unadulterated
joy of the divinity’s propinquity. He forgot there was
a big black blot on his escutcheon, or character. He
ceased to remember he was a renegade and criminal.
The nearness of the proud golden head set his heart
singing until tempestuously and temerariously he flung
three words at her, telepathically, from the throbbing
depths of his soul.</p>
<p>The dance ending abruptly “brought him to.” He
looked around rather dazed; then struggling to awake,
gazed at her. Her face still wore that expression of
deadly calm and pride. Bob didn’t understand. She
was no statue, he would have sworn, yet now she
looked one—for him. And a moment before she had
seemed radiantly, gloriously alive—no Galatea before
the awakening! It was as if she had felt all the vibrating
joy of the dance. But that, of course, could
not have been. Bob felt like rubbing his eyes when
he regarded her. He did not understand unless—</p>
<p>She wished once more to “rub it in,” to make him
realize again more poignantly all that he had lost.
She let him have a fuller glimpse of heaven just to
hurl him from it. She liked to see him go plunging
down into the dark voids of despair. He yielded entirely
to that descending feeling now; he couldn’t
help it.</p>
<p>“I thank you,” said Bob, in his best deportment-book
manner.</p>
<p>The enigmatic violet eyes lighted as they rested on
him. Bob would have sworn it was a cruel light. “Oh,”
she said, “as long as you are a guest—? There are
certain formalities—”</p>
<p>“I understand,” he returned.</p>
<p>The light in the violet eyes deepened and sparkled.
So a cruel Roman lady might have regarded a gladiator
in the arena, answering his appeal with “Thumbs
down.” Bob lifted his hand to his brow. The girl’s
proud lips—lips to dream of—were curved as in cruel
disdain. Then Bob forgot himself again.</p>
<p>“I won’t have you look at me like that,” he said
masterfully. “I’m not a criminal. Confound it, it’s
preposterous. I didn’t steal your ring and I want you
to know it, too. I never stole a thing in my life.”
They were standing somewhat apart, where they
couldn’t be overheard. He spoke in a low tone but
with force, gazing boldly and unafraid now into the
violet eyes.</p>
<p>“I won’t let you think that of me,” he said, stepping
nearer. “Steal from you?” he scoffed. “Do you
know the only thing I’d like to steal from you?” His
eyes challenged hers; the violet eyes didn’t shrink.
“Yourself! I’d like to steal you, but hang your rings!”
He didn’t say “hang”; he used the other word. He
forgot himself completely.</p>
<p>A garden of wild roses blossomed on the girl’s fair
cheek, but she held herself with rare composure. “I
wonder, Mr. Bennett,” she observed quietly, “how I
should answer such mad irresponsible talk?”</p>
<p>“It’s the truth. And if I were a thief—which I’m
not—I wouldn’t steal your rings. Even a thief
wouldn’t steal the rings of the girl he loves.”</p>
<p>More roses! Outraged flushing, no doubt! Yet
still the girl managed to maintain her composure. “You
dare go very far, do you not, Mr. Bennett?”</p>
<p>“Yes; and I’ll go further. I love every hair of
your head. Even when you’re cruel,” he hurried on
recklessly, “and heaven knows you can be cruel
enough, I love you. I love your lips when they say
the unkindest and most outrageous things to me. I
love your eyes when they look scorn. I ought not to
love you, but I do. Why, I loved you the first time I
saw you. And do you think if I were all those things
you think me, I’d dare stand up here and tell you
that? I didn’t mean to tell you ever that I loved you.
But that’s my answer when you imply I’m a rank
criminal. A man’s got to have a clear conscience to
love you as I do. Such love can only go with a clear
conscience. Why, you’re so wonderful and beautiful
to me I couldn’t—” Bob paused. “Don’t you see
the point?” he appealed to her. “A man couldn’t have
you in his heart and not have the right to hold up his
head among his fellow men.”</p>
<p>Miss Gerald did not at once answer; she had not
moved. The sweeping dark lashes were lowered; she
was looking down. “You plead your cause very ingeniously,
Mr. Bennett,” she observed at length, her
lashes suddenly uplifting. The lights were still there
in the violet eyes; they seemed yet mocking him. “You
invoke the sacred name of love as a proof of your innocence.
The argument is unique if not logical,” she
went on with pitiless accents and the red lips that uttered
the “sacred name of love” smiled. “I have been
rather interested, however, in following your somewhat
fantastic defense of yourself. That it has incidentally
involved me is also mildly interesting. Do
you expect me to feel flattered?” The red lips still
smiled. Bob was quite near but she didn’t move
away. She seemed quite unafraid of him.</p>
<p>“You needn’t feel ashamed,” said Bob sturdily.
And his eyes flashed. They seemed to say no woman
ought to be ashamed of an honest man’s love. “I may
be mad over you,” he went on, “but I’m not ashamed
of it. There isn’t a thought I have of you that
doesn’t make me want to be a better man, and a
stronger and more useful one, too,” he added, squaring
his shoulders.</p>
<p>Again the long lashes swept slightly downward,
masking the violet, and the girl’s lips moved—a ripple
of amusement, no doubt. She looked up, however,
once more with that appearance of deadly calm. “Then
you deny it, in toto, having seen my ring to-night?”</p>
<p>Bob swallowed. Again he dropped from the
heights.</p>
<p>“You do not speak,” said Miss Gerald, studying
him.</p>
<p>“I—wish you wouldn’t ask me that,” he managed
to say.</p>
<p>“Why not?” lifting her brows. “Even if you saw
it you could say you hadn’t.”</p>
<p>“That’s just the point,” Miserably. “I couldn’t.”</p>
<p>“Then you did see it?”</p>
<p>“I did.”</p>
<p>“You had it, perhaps?”</p>
<p>“I did.”</p>
<p>“You have it now?”</p>
<p>“No.”</p>
<p>“Ah, you have passed it on to an accomplice, perhaps.”
Mockingly. Miss Gerald drew up her proud
figure. “And this is the man,” she said, “who talks
to me of love. Love!” With a low musical laugh.
“The tenderest passion! The purest one! Dare you
repeat now,” with crushing triumph in the violet eyes,
“what you said a moment ago.”</p>
<p>“I love you,” said Bob, with burning glance. “I
shall carry your image with me to the grave.”</p>
<p>This slightly staggered even one of her regal young
bearing. His tone was that of the master once more.
No criminal in his look when he said that! Miss Gerald’s
slender figure swayed in the least; her breast
stirred. Bob put his handsome reckless face nearer.
That was the way he answered her challenge. He
wore his fighting look.</p>
<p>“I love you,” he said. “And that,” he flung at her,
“is still the answer I dare make.”</p>
<p>Miss Gerald did not reply to this bold defiance at
once. How she would have answered, Bob never knew,
for at that moment the hammer-thrower came up and
the girl at once turned to him, looking slightly paler
as she did so. Both then walked away, Bob’s somber
gaze following them. But he was not long permitted
even this mournful privilege.</p>
<p>“Phone, sir,” said a voice at his elbow. “Mr. Robert
Bennett is urgently wanted on the phone.”</p>
<p>“All right.” And Bob followed the servant. “What
now?” he asked himself wearily.</p>
<p>The voice at the other end was Dan’s. Fortunately
the telephone was isolated and no one in the house
could catch what Bob said. The good old commodore
frantically wished to know all about Gee-gee and Gid-up.
He had heard that Bob had got out of the sanatorium
and gone back to Mrs. Ralston’s. Dan’s desire
for information was greater even than his resentment
toward Bob, as he had stooped to calling him up.</p>
<p>Bob obliged the commodore with such news as he
could give. He told how he had tried unsuccessfully
to sway Gee-gee and to show her the error of her
ways; how she, however, seemed resolutely determined
on her course of action and was not to be
swayed. He related also that there was a legal light
in the house.</p>
<p>At this point Dan’s remarks became explosive; it
was like the Fourth of July at the other end of the
line. Bob waited until the racket ceased and then he
went on with further details, trying to be as
conscientious and informing as possible. Finally he couldn’t
think of anything more to say. But Dan thought of a
lot—and some of it was personal, too. It didn’t
ruffle Bob at all, however. It rolled off him like water
off a duck’s back.</p>
<p>“You’ll be arrested,” said Bob at last. “There’s a
law against that kind of talk through telephones, you
know.”</p>
<p>“I’m afraid it’s all up,” moaned Dan.</p>
<p>“’Fraid it is!” affirmed Bob. “How does Clarence
take it?”</p>
<p>“He’s sitting here, all broke up.”</p>
<p>“Well, tell him to cheer up if he can,” said Bob.
“Gid-up isn’t nearly so dangerous as Gee-gee. At
least that’s my opinion.”</p>
<p>“Oh, isn’t she?” sneered Dan. And then there was
some more Fourth of July at the other end of the line.</p>
<p>Bob waited patiently for it to subside. “Is that all
you wanted to talk with me about?” he asked at
length.</p>
<p>“It is not,” snapped Dan. “Those confounded
blankety-blank detectives, some blankety-blank idiot
has employed as gardeners about Mrs. Ralston’s place,
have arrested that-blankety-blank medical head of the
private sanatorium.”</p>
<p>“What?” exclaimed Bob jubilantly.</p>
<p>“They found him prowling around. He tells the police-station
man who he is, but the police-station man
won’t believe him.”</p>
<p>“Ha! ha!” Bob was glad he could laugh once more,
but it was Fourth of July again for Dan.</p>
<p>“It isn’t any blankety-blank laughing matter,” he
called back. “He’s one of my witnesses and I don’t
want to lose him. Lost witnesses enough already!”
Furiously.</p>
<p>“Well, why don’t you get him out?” said Bob with
a gratified snicker.</p>
<p>“I tried to, but that blankety-blank station-house
man is a blank bullet-head and the blankety detectives
insist he shall be held, as they saw him looking through
a window. What I want you to do is to come down
to the village and help get him out.”</p>
<p>“Me?” said Bob loftily. “Me help get him out?”</p>
<p>“Yes, you can acknowledge he was after you, an
escaped patient.”</p>
<p>“Where is he now?” asked Bob.</p>
<p>“Cell.”</p>
<p>“Well, you tell the station-man for me that he had
better put him in a padded room. Ha! ha!” And Bob
hung up the receiver.</p>
<p>But almost immediately the bell rang again.</p>
<p>“Hello!” said a voice. It was the telephone operator.
“Is Mr. Bennett still there? Oh! Well,
there’s a party on the long distance wants to speak to
you.”</p>
<p>“Hello; that you, Bob?” came in far-away accents.</p>
<p>“It’s me. Who are you?”</p>
<p>“Dad.”</p>
<p>“Oh, hello, dad!” Bob tried to make his voice
joyful.</p>
<p>“I called you up to tell you I caught a fifty-seven
pounder. Thought you’d like to congratulate me.”</p>
<p>Bob did.</p>
<p>“They’ve made me a member of the Pius Piscatorials—swell
club down here,” continued dad jubilantly,
and again Bob did the congratulating act. “By the
way, how’s hustling?” went on dad.</p>
<p>“I’m hustling all right.”</p>
<p>“That’s good. Well, good-by, son. I’ll be short of
funds presently, but that doesn’t worry me. I’m having
the time of my life. By-by, dear boy.”</p>
<p>“By-by, dad, dear.”</p>
<p>“Hold on, Mr. Bennett.” It was the telephone operator
once more. “There’s another party that’s
bound to speak to you, and take it from me I don’t
like the sound of his voice. I hope he isn’t like that
first party that was talking to you. What us poor
girls has to put up with is something shameful, and—All
right. Go ahead.”</p>
<p>“This is Dickie,” said a voice. “Say! you leave my
girl alone. I’ve heard of your goings-on.”</p>
<p>“Who told you?” asked Bob. “That Peeping Tom?
That maniac-medico?”</p>
<p>“I told you before I was going to marry her. You
keep off the premises if you know what is good for
you.” Dickie was so mad he was childish.</p>
<p>“No, you’re not going to marry her,” said Bob.</p>
<p>“You—you don’t mean to say you’re engaged to
her?” came back in choked tones.</p>
<p>“No. She’s only my jolly little pal. But she thinks
a lot of what I tell her and I’ll pick out a real man for
her some day. You aren’t good enough. A chap that
will punch another chap when he can’t defend himself
isn’t the chap for jolly little pal.”</p>
<p>“I didn’t punch you when you couldn’t defend
yourself,” said Dickie indignantly.</p>
<p>“I’m the one to know. You gave it to me all right,
and thereby settled your chances with her. Do you
think I’d let a girl like her marry a chap like you?
Why, you might come home and beat your wife!
You’re capable of it. I refuse my consent absolutely.
I shall advise her to have nothing whatever to do with
you.”</p>
<p>Dickie couldn’t speak and Bob left him in a state of
coma. This time Bob was suffered to leave the telephone
booth. He was awfully glad they had the
maniac-medico locked up. Maybe he would get a cute
little room with a cunning little window, and maybe
there’d be a landscape? But there wouldn’t be any
flowers.</p>
<p>Just at this moment the temperamental little thing
hurried up to Bob in a state of great agitation. He saw
that something serious had happened.</p>
<h1 id='t8645'>CHAPTER XX—HAND-READING</h1>
<p>“Did you get rid of it?” he asked hurriedly.</p>
<p>“I did not,” she gasped. “That mean old
monocle-man wouldn’t let me. He’s just kept his eye
on me every moment. When I went up-stairs, he followed.
There he is now. See how he’s watching us.
Oh, what shall I do, if they find me with it?”</p>
<p>“Give it to me,” said Bob.</p>
<p>“No, I won’t.”</p>
<p>“But do you realize what it means if they find it
on you?” he asked in alarm.</p>
<p>“We would go to jail together,” said jolly little pal.</p>
<p>“But I won’t have you go to jail. It’s preposterous.”</p>
<p>“Maybe I deserve it,” she remarked, “for having
‘peached.’ I hope,” wistfully, “our cells will be close
together. Did you have a nice dance with Miss Gerald?”</p>
<p>“Give it to me,” commanded Bob sternly. “If you
don’t, I’ll—I’ll take it from you.”</p>
<p>But she put her hand behind her. “Isn’t Gwendoline
the most beautiful thing in the world?” she said.
“We’ll talk about her in jail. It’ll help pass the time.”</p>
<p>“Give—”</p>
<p>“I’m not the least bit jealous, because now I’m
only your really-truly little pal,” she went on. “I wish
I could be your best man. But I don’t suppose that’s
feasible.”</p>
<p>“Give—”</p>
<p>“I might swallow it,” she observed tentatively.</p>
<p>“Great heavens!” he reached for her hand.</p>
<p>“Aw!—fortune-telling?” said a voice.</p>
<p>“Yes; he was just going to read my palm,” answered
jolly little pal promptly while Bob turned
rather nervously to regard the monocle-man.</p>
<p>“Perhaps—aw!—I could read it,” suggested the
monocle-man, looking at the closed fingers. “I have
some—aw!—skill that way. Perhaps, Miss Dolly—aw!—you
would permit me to look at your heart line?”</p>
<p>“I just won’t,” said Miss Dolly, with flashing eyes.</p>
<p>Bob watched her closely. If she tried to swallow it,
he would stop her.</p>
<p>“How—aw!—very unkind!” said the monocle-man.
“If you would—aw!—permit me, I could tell you—?
aw!—just what kind of a man you’re going to marry.”</p>
<p>“I’m not going to marry any one,” replied the jolly
little pal.</p>
<p>“Please now, do—aw!” he urged.</p>
<p>“Well, if you want to be tiresome.” She gave him
the hand that didn’t hold the ring.</p>
<p>“Impulsive! Charming!” he said, bending his monocle
owlishly over the soft pink palm. “Now the
other?”</p>
<p>“Won’t!” she returned succinctly.</p>
<p>Bob drew yet nearer. He believed she was quite
capable of carrying out that threat of swallowing it.</p>
<p>“But how can I complete telling your fortune—aw!—unless
I see the other hand?” expostulated the
monocle-man with a pleasant smile. “I desire especially
to examine the Mount of Venus.”</p>
<p>“There isn’t any mountain any more,” said the jolly
little pal. “It’s been moved away.”</p>
<p>“Aw! How interesting! Then we might survey the
vale of friendship.”</p>
<p>She looked around like a bird in a snare; the hammer-man
was not far away and impulsively she flew
over to him.</p>
<p>“Was this our dance? I’m so forgetful!”</p>
<p>“It wasn’t, but it is,” he returned with a smile.
Obviously he was flattered. Heretofore Miss Dolly
had not acted particularly prepossessed by the hammer-thrower;
he hadn’t any temperament—so she thought;
he didn’t swing one around with enough abandon.
He was one of those serious goody-goody dancers. He
swung Miss Dolly very seriously now; they went so
slowly for her that once she stumbled over his feet. It
was evident their temperaments didn’t match. Or
maybe what she held in one hand had made her terribly
self-conscious. Bob watched them gloomily. He
feared she might swallow it during the dance, but she
didn’t, for the little hand was partly closed still when
she left the hammer-thrower and Bob gazed around
for that confounded monocle-man. The latter, however,
had apparently lost interest in palm-reading and
the temperamental little thing, for he was nowhere to
be seen. Miss Dolly’s eyes were at once frightened
and strange when she fluttered again to Bob’s side.</p>
<p>“Oh, I’ve done the most awful thing,” she confided
quite breathlessly to him.</p>
<p>“You—you haven’t swallowed it?” he exclaimed in
alarm. He thought he had watched her closely, but
still she might have found opportunity—she might
have made a swift movement to her lips which he had
failed to observe.</p>
<p>“No, I haven’t swallowed it,” she answered. “I’ve
done worse.”</p>
<p>“Worse? What could be worse?”</p>
<p>“I slipped it into his waistcoat pocket.”</p>
<p>“Whose? The hammer-thrower? No? By jove!—”</p>
<p>“I did it when I tripped. And I tripped purposely,
and when he was very gallant and kept me from falling,
I—I slipped it in. And isn’t it awful? Poor
man! He’s such a goody-good. You don’t mind, do
you?” Anxiously.</p>
<p>“Oh, I mind a heap,” said Bob jovially. “Ho!
ho!”</p>
<p>“I was afraid you might scold.”</p>
<p>“Scold? No, indeed. I’m awfully obliged and I
only wish I could do something for you to show how
thankful I am.”</p>
<p>“Do you? Then you might—” She gazed toward
the conservatory where it was dim and shadowy.
“No; it wouldn’t do. We’re not engaged any more.
Besides—” And she looked toward a straight proud
figure with golden hair. She didn’t finish what she
was going to say. Only—“I guess I won’t make
you,” she added.</p>
<p>“Thanks,” said Bob. “You’re sure the best pal a
chap ever had. But honest! I hate to be mean and
disappoint you after all you’ve done. And I might
volunteer, if you’d make it just one—or, at the most,
two.”</p>
<p>A moment the temperamental little thing seemed to
waver. Then the rosebud lips set more firmly. “No,”
she said. “It’s awfully dear of you to offer, but I don’t
want any. You’ve made me see the error of my ways.
I’ve reformed. I only want to be your jolly little pal.
But you haven’t any conscientious scruples about the
way I disposed of it, have you?” she asked, swiftly
changing the subject.</p>
<p>“Conscientious scruples? Not one. Ho! ho!”</p>
<p>But the laughter faded suddenly from Bob’s lips.
At that moment the hammer-thrower chanced to put
his fingers in his waistcoat pocket. Then he gave a
slight start and glanced toward the temperamental little
thing; his brow was lowering, and he appeared to
meditate. Bob knew there must be murder in his
heart. Just then from across the room, Bob saw the
monocle-man approaching the hammer-thrower.</p>
<p>The latter cast a swift look toward him of the monocle.
It was the look of a man who for the first time,
perhaps, fully realizes, or begins to realize certain unexpected
forces arrayed against him. He now had the
ring and he dared not keep it. If he had never entertained
any suspicions regarding the monocle-man’s
identity before, there was something about the other
now that awoke sudden and secret misgivings. The
monocle-man didn’t make much of a point of disguising
his watchfulness at the present time. That
was odd—unless he didn’t greatly care just now
whether any one guessed his identity or not. Possibly
the psychological moment was approaching.</p>
<p>The hammer-thrower thought, no doubt, that Bob
had told the temperamental little thing that he (the
hammer-man) had taken the ring from Miss Gerald’s
room and Miss Dolly had offered to return it to the
hammer-thrower. And she had found a way to do so.
It was clever. But the hammer-thrower was not in a
mood to appreciate the grim jest. Now that the tables
were turned, Bob and Miss Dolly would make it
their business to see that the glittering trifle was found
in <em>his</em> possession. The hammer-thrower couldn’t dispose
of it under the circumstances; he was in exactly
the same predicament Bob had been in. Suddenly he
seemed to make up his mind what to do; he adopted
the most daring expedient. In those few moments he
had done some very rapid thinking. He stepped toward
Miss Gerald now, his face wearing its most reliable
expression. Honesty fairly radiated from his
square solid countenance.</p>
<p>“Miss Gerald,” he said, “may I speak with you privately?”</p>
<p>“Is it important?” she asked.</p>
<p>“Very!” in his most serious manner.</p>
<p>She complied with his request, and they withdrew
from the hearing of others.</p>
<p>“Miss Gerald,” he began abruptly, “have you lost
a ring?”</p>
<p>She gazed at him in surprise.</p>
<p>“I have.”</p>
<p>“Is this it? I believe I recognize it as one you have
worn.”</p>
<p>“It is.” Gwendoline’s look swerved toward Bob.
“But—” she began.</p>
<p>“You do not understand how it came in my possession?”
he asked, in an even monotonous tone.</p>
<p>“I certainly did not think that you—”</p>
<p>“You didn’t think I had it?” Seriously.</p>
<p>“I did not.” And again she looked toward Bob.</p>
<p>“I did not know I had it myself,” he observed
gravely, “until just this minute. You believe me, I
trust?”</p>
<p>“Yes,” she said slowly, “I believe you. But how—?”
Again she paused.</p>
<p>“Did I come by it? A certain young lady I danced
with just now placed it in my waistcoat pocket.”</p>
<p>The hammer-thrower held himself squarely, with a
poise that expressed rectitude. He was rather well
satisfied with what he had done. He argued that his
action, from Miss Gerald’s point of view, must be that
of an innocent man. If he (the hammer-thrower)
had taken the ring it wasn’t likely he would step up
to Miss Gerald and offer it back to her. His bold move
complicated the issue; but he did not doubt, however,
that he would emerge from the affair with credit.</p>
<p>“Of course I am aware that it is a serious charge to
make,” went on the hammer-thrower, “but what was
I to do? I never was put in a more painful position.”</p>
<p>“Painful, indeed,” replied Miss Gerald sympathetically.
“Of course it was a joke.”</p>
<p>“I am glad you take that view of it,” he replied.
“You can see that naturally I found it deucedly awkward.
Things have been disappearing in so many
country-houses, don’t you know. It wouldn’t have
been a joke for me if I hadn’t fortunately discovered
it as I did. Under the circumstances, I don’t really
appreciate Miss Dolly’s jokes.”</p>
<p>“But mightn’t it have been some one else?” suggested
Gwendoline.</p>
<p>“I danced only with you and Miss Dolly.”</p>
<p>“Well, naturally, it wouldn’t be I,” said Gwendoline
with a smile. “There’s Dolly now talking with
Mr. Bennett and Lord Stanfield, Suppose we speak to
her. But I wouldn’t have any one else know for the
world. I’m really very sorry Dolly’s heedlessness
should have caused one of my aunt’s guests any embarrassment.”
Miss Gerald was graciousness itself.</p>
<p>In spite of the thrill of the moment, the hammer-thrower
couldn’t prevent an expression of honest approval
gleaming from his eyes. “You are very kind,”
he said in a low tone. “You will never know all this
visit has meant to me. I, too, regret exceedingly that
what you regard as one of Miss Dolly’s mad pranks—and
we all know how prone she is to do the unconventional—should
have involved me in a little episode
that, perhaps, isn’t so agreeable as it should be. I trust,
though, you don’t blame me for coming to you at once
about the matter?”</p>
<p>“Why should I blame you?” The violet eyes full on
the deep serious ones.</p>
<p>“I suppose I might just have placed it somewhere,
on the mantle, for example, and not said anything
about Miss Dolly’s part in the affair,” he observed
musingly. “It might have been more chivalrous. One
doesn’t like to complain of a woman, you know, and a
fellow guest at that.” With regret that sounded genuine.</p>
<p>“I think you took the only course a conscientious
man could,” said Gwendoline Gerald. “Indeed, I can
appreciate your position. You did what any honest
man would feel impelled to do.”</p>
<p>Again that gracious smile! Again a slight gleaming
in the hammer-man’s eyes! At the moment she seemed
to realize in every way the poet’s picture of regal young
womanhood—“divinely tall” and most divinely fashioned,
she appeared, as she stood with the light from
a great chandelier full upon her.</p>
<p>“Your approval is very dear to me,” the hammer-thrower
murmured. “I think I have your friendship.
That is much—much, indeed. But—” For a moment
he seemed about to say more. His strong, honest-looking
face surely wore an expression of some
feeling deeper than friendship.</p>
<p>Would Gwendoline Gerald have shrunk from a
verbal expression of what his look seemed to imply?
The violet eyes never appeared deeper, more
enigmatic—receptive. The hammer-thrower did not go on,
however. He reverted to that other topic.</p>
<p>“Perhaps it would be as well to drop the matter altogether,”
he remarked. “I am quite satisfied to do
so, if you are.”</p>
<p>“That is nice of you,” she said in a tone that implied
she still approved of him. “But I think I shall speak
to Dolly. Or, at least, let her see the ring is on my
finger.”</p>
<p>“I can’t understand why she should have done it,”
he observed in puzzled accents as they crossed the
room. “I can’t quite see how it can be classed as a
joke.”</p>
<p>“Dolly has the wildest idea of humor,” returned
Gwendoline. “As a little girl she was always doing
the maddest things. Perhaps, too, she has been reading
about those sensational robberies and wished to
perpetrate a hoax.”</p>
<p>“I say, that would have been rather rough on a
fellow, wouldn’t it?”</p>
<p>“And then, after creating a little excitement, she
would have come forward and said she did it. Maybe
she read about that escapade of young men and girls
at an English house-party. They carried off valuables
in an automobile, and returned the same, piece-meal,
by parcel post. I don’t say my explanation of Dolly’s
prank is a correct one,” said Miss Gerald, tentatively
lifting long sweeping lashes to regard her companion,
“but it may in some measure throw light upon it.”</p>
<p>“Unless—?” He paused.</p>
<p>“Unless what?” she asked.</p>
<p>“Nothing. Only I was thinking—”</p>
<p>The violet eyes became suddenly darker. “You mean
about what you told me this morning—about Mr. Bennett
and how you found him—?”</p>
<p>“I really didn’t wish to speak of that, only it was
strange—” He stopped.</p>
<p>“Strange, indeed,” she observed, studying him.</p>
<p>“Anyhow, I can’t see how to connect that with
this,” he confessed.</p>
<p>“There does seem a missing-link somewhere,” observed
the girl. “Do you”—and her eyes were again
full upon the deep serious ones—“like Mr. Bennett?”</p>
<p>“I neither like nor dislike him.” They had stopped
for a moment in a doorway. “His manners have been
rather extraordinary. I honestly can’t make him out.
He looks rational enough and yet he acts most irrationally.”</p>
<p>“I am going to tell you a great secret,” said the girl.
“Please do not speak of it to any one else. Some one
in the house has been taking things—in earnest, I
mean.”</p>
<p>“No? Is it possible?” he observed. “Then it
wouldn’t have been nice for me if that ring—?” Honest
indignation shone from his eyes. “I must say Miss
Dolly did take a confounded liberty.”</p>
<p>“Under the circumstances, yes,” said the girl
gravely.</p>
<p>“You say things are missing? Great Scott!”</p>
<p>“I did not say missing.” Quickly. “It is a case
of substitution.”</p>
<p>“Pardon me if I fail to understand.”</p>
<p>She explained. “By jove! that is clever. I am honored
by your confidence. I won’t betray it. Your
aunt is naturally distressed?”</p>
<p>“Naturally—though she appears the same as usual.
However, she is determined to put an end to these
affairs. Society has been frightfully annoyed. It is not
nice to ask some one down and then to have her lose—”</p>
<p>“I understand,” said the hammer-thrower gravely.
“If your aunt can stop these unfortunate occurrences
society will owe her a great debt. But tell me further,
if I am not intruding too greatly on your confidences,
does the finger of suspicion point anywhere?”</p>
<p>“Yes,” returned the girl.</p>
<p>“Of course,” he said, and looked toward Bob.</p>
<p>That young man’s face did not now express any trace
of satisfaction or jovial feeling. He looked both puzzled
and worried, and glanced apprehensively from
time to time at the sentimental young thing. The monocle-man
<em>was</em> telling her fortune now. With British
persistence he had reverted to the subject upon again
approaching the couple, which he did almost immediately
after the hammer-thrower returned to Miss
Gerald her ring.</p>
<p>“You missed your ring?” said the hammer-thrower
after a pause.</p>
<p>“Yes. But I never imagined—”</p>
<p>“It would be returned in such an extraordinary
manner? I don’t see where he—?” And the hammer-man
paused again with downbent brows.</p>
<p>It was not hard for her to read the thought. He
did not see just where Bob Bennett “came in.” That’s
what he once more implied. He didn’t wish to be unjust
to any one. His expression said that.</p>
<p>“I guess it must just have been a whim,” he conceded
after a moment, handsomely. “After all, it’s
proofs that count.” The sentence had a familiar
sound to Miss Gerald who entertained a vague impression
she had said something like it to Bob. They approached
Dolly.</p>
<h1 id='t9120'>CHAPTER XXI—HEART OF STONE</h1>
<p>“Did he tell you that I—?” began Miss Dolly at
once, and snatching her arm from that tiresome
monocle-man.</p>
<p>“Yes, my dear,” said Gwendoline. “And he seemed
a little hurt at your sense of humor.”</p>
<p>The temperamental little thing stood like a wild
creature at bay, her eyes glowing like those of a fawn
about to receive the arrow of a hunter or a huntress.
Miss Gerald did not look a very remorseless huntress,
however.</p>
<p>“How did he know I did it?” said Dolly with a
glance toward the hammer-thrower. “He didn’t catch
me at it.” Defiantly.</p>
<p>“Deduction, my dear,” replied Gwendoline.</p>
<p>“He can’t prove it. I defy him.” The jolly little
pal felt now how one feels when he or she is haled
into a court of justice. She wouldn’t “peach” though.
They could put her through the third or the thirty-third
degree and she wouldn’t tell on Bob. Never! “You
have only <em>his</em> word,” with another glance
at the hammer-thrower,
“and maybe my word is as good as his.”
She had to tell a whopper; but she would tell a million
for Bob. It was a pal’s duty to.</p>
<p>“But I saw you do it,” now interposed the monocle-man
with a quiet smile.</p>
<p>She almost wilted at that, then threw back her head
farther.</p>
<p>“I”—Bob stepped quickly forward—“gave it to
her. It was I,” gravely to Miss Gerald, “who had your
ring. Think what you please.” She had already
passed judgment on him, he remembered.</p>
<p>“Don’t you believe him,” tempestuously interrupted
the temperamental little thing. “I took it myself. It—it
was just a joke.”</p>
<p>“That’s what Miss Gerald and I were saying just
now,” observed the hammer-thrower heavily. He held
himself just as if he were a remote, rather puzzled bystander.</p>
<p>Bob gave a hoarse laugh. He couldn’t control himself.</p>
<p>“I beg your pardon,” observed the monocle-man,
“but I am afraid Miss Dolly, in her zeal, is rather misleading
in her statements. Her vale of friendship, I
have noticed, on her palm, is well developed. At the
same time I can not let her wrongfully accuse herself,
even though the matter should pass as a jest. I
have to tell the truth—you must forgive me, Miss
Dolly. But I saw Mr. Bennett pass you that ring during
the dance.”</p>
<p>“But why should he?” spoke up Miss Gerald.
“Can’t you enlighten me, dear?” To the temperamental
young thing.</p>
<p>“I won’t say a word,” said the latter at a loss. “Only
I’d like to tell you”—to the monocle-man—“how much
I like you.”</p>
<p>“I’m sorry to have displeased you,” he answered
simply. “You have really a charming hand. As for
the reason you ask”—to Miss Gerald—“it should not
be difficult to find. I conclude that Mr. Bennett asked
Miss Dolly to return the ring to Miss Gerald’s room.
I think that was what she was trying to do and I’m
afraid I prevented her.”</p>
<p>“But why should Mr. Bennett”—Gwendoline did
not deign to address that young man direct—“have
asked Dolly to do that?”</p>
<p>“Maybe,” suggested the monocle-man, “Mr. Bennett
will answer that himself.”</p>
<p>“What’s the use?” said Bob. “Nobody believes
anything I say.” Miss Gwendoline still acted as if
she did not see him.</p>
<p>“If you take him to jail, I’m going too,” remarked
the temperamental little thing. “If he’s guilty, I—”</p>
<p>“You suggest, then, he is guilty?” said the monocle-man
quickly.</p>
<p>“No; no! I—”</p>
<p>“I fear you have suggested it,” he interrupted
pointedly.</p>
<p>“If people confess do they get lighter sentences?”
she asked with a quick breath.</p>
<p>“Usually,” said the monocle-man.</p>
<p>Jolly little pal pondered painfully. Perhaps she saw
plainer than Bob how clear was the case against him.
“Why don’t you?” she suggested.</p>
<p>Bob smiled feebly. “The answer I make is the
same one I gave to Miss Gerald when I last spoke to
her.”</p>
<p>A flame sprang to Gwendoline’s cheek.</p>
<p>“You dare say that now—with all this evidence
against you?” She showed herself keenly aware of
his presence now.</p>
<p>“I dare.” He stepped to her side and looked into
her eyes. “My eyes are saying it now.”</p>
<p>The girl’s breast stirred quickly. Did she fear he
would say those words aloud, before all the others?
He was reckless enough to do so.</p>
<p>“Do you understand or shall I make it plainer?”
he asked, swinging back his blond head.</p>
<p>“I do not think that will be necessary,” she answered
with some difficulty.</p>
<p>“What <em>is</em> it all about?” said the hammer-man, and
there was a slight frown on his brow.</p>
<p>“You ought to know,” returned Bob, as his eyes
met swiftly the other’s. For a moment gaze encountered
gaze. Bob’s now was sardonically ironical, yet
challenging. The hammer-thrower’s was mystified.
Then the latter shrugged.</p>
<p>“Is he mad as well as a—” he spoke musingly.</p>
<p>“Thief,” said Bob. “Say it right out. I’m not
afraid of the word.”</p>
<p>The hammer-thrower sighed heavily. “What are
we to do?” he said to Miss Gerald sympathetically.
“It is needless to say, you can command me.”</p>
<p>“Isn’t that lovely?” Sotto voce from Bob.</p>
<p>“I’m terribly afraid the affair has passed from the
joke stage,” said Gwendoline Gerald and once more
she appeared cool and composed. Again she made Bob
feel he was but a matter for consideration—an
intrusive and unwelcome matter that had to be disposed of.
“What ought I to do?”</p>
<p>“Arrest me, of course,” returned Bob. “I’ve been
waiting for it for some time. And the funny part is,
the affair hasn’t passed from the joke stage. You
know that.” To the hammer-man. “Why don’t you
chuckle?”</p>
<p>“I suppose I may as well tell you I’m a bogus lord,”
unexpectedly interrupted the monocle-man at this moment.
“My name is not even a high-sounding one.”
The hammer-thrower started slightly. “It’s plain
Michael Moriarity. But I was once a lord’s valet.”
He had dropped his drawl, though he still kept his
monocle. “I am sorry to have intruded as a real personage
among you all, although there are plenty of
bogus lords floating through society.”</p>
<p>“Oh, you didn’t deceive me,” answered jolly little
pal. “I knew who you were.”</p>
<p>“Well, you certainly hoodwinked the rest of us,”
observed the hammer-thrower slowly. He stood with
his head down as if thinking deeply. When he looked
up, he gazed straight into the monocle-man’s eyes.
They were twinkling and good-humored. An arrest
in high society was rather a ceremonious affair. You
didn’t take a man by the scruff of the neck and yank
him to the patrol wagon. There were polite formalities
to be observed. The end had to be accomplished
without shocking or disturbing the other guests. The
truly artistic method would, in fact, be the attainment
of the result while the guests remained in absolute
ignorance, for the time being, of what had been done.</p>
<p>“I’m afraid I’ve got to do my duty,” observed the
monocle-man to Bob. “You look like a man who
would play the game. A game loser, I mean?” Suggestively.</p>
<p>“Oh, I’m a loser all right,” said Bob, looking at the
hammer-man. For a moment he wondered if he
should speak further. He could imagine how his
words would be received. He didn’t forget that he
hadn’t a shadow of proof against the hammer-man.
Miss Gerald would think he was accusing an innocent
person and she would despise him (Bob) only the
more—if that were possible. To speak would be but to
court the contempt of the others, the laughter of the
hammer-man. Bob’s thoughts were terribly confused
but he realized he might as well remain silent; indeed,
perhaps it would be better for the present.</p>
<p>“Anyhow, what I told you wasn’t so,” said jolly
little pal to the monocle-man. “And I repeat I will
never testify to it.” She was awfully dejected.</p>
<p>“Yes, you will,” said Bob monotonously. “As I
told you, I won’t let you get into trouble.”</p>
<p>“Besides there’s all that other evidence,” suggested
the monocle-man.</p>
<p>“I can explain that away,” returned Bob. Then he
thought: Could he? Would Dan and Clarence stand
by him now and acknowledge it was they he had let
out of the house at that unseemly hour? He doubted
it. Dickie, too, wouldn’t be very friendly. Their last
conversation over the telephone was far from reassuring.
“No; I am not sure that I can,” Bob added. He
still had to remember he was the impersonation of
Truth.</p>
<p>“You refer to Miss Gerald’s having seen you wandering
about the house after the others had retired, I
presume?” suggested the monocle-man, who was enjoying
the conversation immensely. It was the kind
of a situation he liked. He wouldn’t have curtailed it
for the world. When the hammer-man heard the
question, his brows lifted slightly. Surely a momentary
glint of gladness or satisfaction shone from his
gaze. But it receded at once. He listened attentively.</p>
<p>“Yes, I was referring to that,” answered Bob, gazing
at Gwendoline. She, condemn him to a prison
cell! She, swear away his liberty! He gazed wistfully,
almost sadly at the sweet inexorable lips which might
ruin his life. He didn’t feel resentful; he only determined
to put up the best fight he could when the time
came.</p>
<p>“Is—is it necessary to proceed to extremities?”
said the hammer-man at this point sedulously. “Would
not the mere fact that we all know about the matter be
sufficient punishment?” He appealed to Miss Gerald.
“My father used to tell me that when a man was down,
if we could see the way to extend a helping hand, we
would be doing the right thing. I think the world is
becoming more tolerant and there is a tendency to give
a person a chance to reform, instead of locking
him up.”</p>
<p>Again Bob laughed. In spite of his unhappiness
and that weight of melancholy, the other’s heavy humor
tickled Bob’s funny bone. Think of the hammer-man
pretending to try to keep Bob out of jail! Didn’t
he know how to play his cards? The deadly joke was
on Bob.</p>
<p>“Don’t appeal too hard in my behalf, old chap; you
might strain yourself,” he said to the hammer-thrower.</p>
<p>But the hammer-thrower pretended not to hear. He
kept his sedulous, humane glance on Miss Gerald.</p>
<p>“You mean you would have my aunt take no action
in the matter?” she said, and the lovely face was
now calm and thoughtful.</p>
<p>“Please do!” This from jolly little pal. “Dear,
dear Gwendoline! It’ll be such a favor to me. And
I’ll love you dearly.”</p>
<p>“You certainly are a very doughty champion of Mr.
Bennett, Dolly,” observed Miss Gerald. There was a
question in her look and her words might have implied
that Bob had been making love to the temperamental
little thing, even when he dared tell Miss Gerald he
cared for her. Gwendoline’s face wore an odd smile
now.</p>
<p>“I’m not interested for the reason you think,” answered
the temperamental little thing spiritedly. “He
never made love to me—real love. I tried to make
him, because he is all that should appeal to any woman,
but he wouldn’t,” she went on tempestuously,
regardlessly. “And then we vowed we’d be pals and
we are. And I’ll stand by him to the last ditch.”</p>
<p>“You are very loyal, dear,” said Gwendoline
quietly.</p>
<p>“Besides, he’s in love with some one else,” she shot
back, and Bob shifted. There was a directness about
jolly little pal that was sometimes disconcerting.</p>
<p>The hammer-man looked quickly toward Miss
Gerald, and his eyes were full of jealousy for an instant.
He was not sorry that Bob was going to “get
his.” Nevertheless, he would plead for him again,
he wouldn’t cease to be consistent in his role.</p>
<p>“I’ll tell you who it is, too, if you want to know,”
the temperamental little thing went on to Gwendoline.</p>
<p>“My dear, I haven’t asked. It seems to me,” coldly,
“we are slightly drifting from the subject.”</p>
<p>“I believe you stated just now that you and Mr.
Bennett vowed to be pals,” interposed the monocle-man
regarding Miss Dolly. “Does that mean you
agreed to be accomplices—to divide the ‘swag,’ in the
parlance of the lower world?” The monocle-man was
enjoying himself more and more. He was finding
new interest in the scene. It was more “meaty” than
he had dared hope.</p>
<p>“She doesn’t mean anything of the kind,” put in Bob
savagely. “She just extended the hand of friendship.
She’s a good fellow, that is all, and I won’t have you
imply the slightest thing against her. You understand
that, Mr. Bogus Lord?”</p>
<p>“I only asked a question,” observed the monocle-man
humbly.</p>
<p>“Well, you’ve got the answer.” In the same aggressive
manner. “She’s a—a brick and I won’t have
any harm come to her on my account.”</p>
<p>“None of us would have any harm come to Dolly,”
said Gwendoline coldly.</p>
<p>“I wanted him to elope with me, but he wouldn’t,”
went on the temperamental little thing, thinking fast.
Bob listened in despair. “I didn’t know then it was
only friendship I felt. I thought it was love. And
when he refused, I was furious. To be revenged, I
went to that horrid man”—looking at him of the
monocle—“and told him a pack of lies.”</p>
<p>“Lies?” said the monocle-man, smiling sweetly and
screwing his glass in farther.</p>
<p>“Yes, and that’s the reason I shall give on the witness-stand.”
Defiantly. “I’ll tell the truth there—let
every one know how horrid and wicked I was.”</p>
<p>The monocle-man shook his head with mild disapproval.
“What do you say to that, Mr. Bennett?” he
asked softly.</p>
<p>“Of course I can’t let her do anything to incriminate
herself,” answered Bob mournfully. “To prevent
her doing so I shall have to avow right now—?
and I do”—firmly—“that those were not lies, but
truths she told you.”</p>
<p>“Please!—please!—” said jolly little pal piteously.</p>
<p>“Truths!” said Bob again boldly.</p>
<p>Miss Dolly gave a great sigh. “Are you going to
confess you are guilty of all they charge?”</p>
<p>“I am not.” Stubbornly. “I am not guilty.”</p>
<p>“I’m rather afraid certain evidence, including Miss
Dolly’s truths, which you acknowledge as such, might
tend to show you are,” suggested the monocle-man.</p>
<p>Again Miss Dolly thought fast. Bob wouldn’t let
her declare her accusations of him lies; therefore only
one alternative remained.</p>
<p>“<em>I</em> have a confession to make,” she said solemnly.</p>
<p>Bob looked startled. “Don’t!—” he began. He
wondered into what new realm her inventive faculties
would lead her.</p>
<p>“Mr. Bennett,” observed the monocle-man gravely,
“I have to remind you that anything you say can be
used against you. And your manner now, in seeking
to restrain or interfere with what Miss Dolly has to
say, will certainly hurt your case.”</p>
<p>Bob groaned. He cast hunted eyes upon Miss Dolly.
The jolly little pal breathed hard, but there was a look
of determination in the dark soulful eyes.</p>
<p>“Mr. Mike Something, or whatever your name is,”
she said to the monocle-man in a low tense tone, “I am
all that which you suggested.”</p>
<p>He overlooked the scornful mode of address. He
rubbed his hands softly; his eyes were pleased. “You
mean about agreeing to be accomplices and to divide
the ‘swag’?”</p>
<p>“Yes.” Fatalistically.</p>
<p>Bob groaned again.</p>
<p>The temperamental little thing looked up in the air.
She would be mainly responsible for sending Bob to
jail—the thought burned. What was a treacherous
but repentant pal’s duty under the circumstances? She
had a vision, too, of those adjoining cells.</p>
<p>“You see,” she began dreamily, “my father is rather
sparing of the spending money he allows me, and I
have terribly extravagant tastes. Why, my hats alone
cost a fortune. I simply have got to have nice and
expensive things.” Again Bob groaned. Dolly
dreamed on: “I’ve bushel-baskets of silk stockings,
for example. See!” Displaying an exquisite ankle.
“My gowns all come from Paris. Gwendoline can
tell you that.” Miss Gerald did not deny. “And
they’re not gowns from those side-street dressmakers,
either. They come from <em>the</em> places on the rue de la
Paix. Besides”—Dolly’s dream expanded—“I like
to take things.” Another groan from Bob. “I think
I’m a clepto.”</p>
<p>“There isn’t one word of truth in what she’s saying,”
exclaimed Bob indignantly. “Why, it’s outrageous.
She doesn’t realize what she’s doing.”</p>
<p>“Yes, I do,” returned little pal with a stanch and
loyal glance. “Why should you take all the blame
when I’m entitled to half of it?”</p>
<p>“You aren’t entitled to any of it,” he retorted helplessly.
“And there isn’t any blame for you to share, either.”</p>
<p>“Do you expect us to believe that?” observed the
monocle-man reproachfully.</p>
<p>“No, I don’t.”</p>
<p>“Or a jury?”</p>
<p>“Perhaps not.”</p>
<p>“Really, old chap”—began the hammer-man sedulously,
and he looked awfully sorry. Perhaps he was
going to extend his sympathy.</p>
<p>“Say it in Latin!” interrupted Bob ungratefully.</p>
<p>“What does he mean?” queried the monocle-man.</p>
<p>“I’m really at a loss,” answered the hammer-thrower.</p>
<p>That gentleman had gleaned a great deal of
information of a most gratifying nature. He didn’t know
all the whys and wherefores, but it was sufficient that
Bob seemed too deep in the toils to extricate himself.
A happy (to the hammer-man) combination of circumstances
had involved the other.</p>
<p>“Please let him go,” again pleaded Miss Dolly to
Gwendoline. “Be a dear. Besides, think how he—”
She went over to Miss Gerald suddenly and whispered
two words—two ardent electrical words!</p>
<p>Gwendoline’s eyes flashed but she did not answer.
One of the hammer-thrower’s hands closed.</p>
<p>“I fear Miss Gerald couldn’t do that now, if she
wanted to,” interposed the monocle-man. “It isn’t altogether
her affair or her aunt’s. You see, there are
other people who gave those other social functions Mr.
Bennett attended. They may not incline to be sentimentally—I
may say foolishly lenient. So you see
even if I desired to oblige a lady”—bowing to Dolly
“whom I esteem very much, my hands are tied.
Justice, in other words, must take its course.”</p>
<p>Bob looked at Gwendoline. “Some day, Miss Gerald,
you may realize you helped, or tried to help, convict
an innocent man.”</p>
<p>“She doesn’t care,” said the temperamental little
thing vehemently. “She’s got a stone for a heart.”
Only that cryptic smile on the proud beautiful lips answered
this outbreak. The jolly little pal went right
over to her again. “Anyhow,” she said, “he kissed me.”</p>
<p>Just for an instant Miss Gerald’s sweeping lashes
lifted to Bob. Just for an instant, too, Miss Gerald’s
white teeth buried themselves in that proud red upper
lip. Miss Dolly turned to the monocle-man. “Now,
I’m ready to go with you,” she said.</p>
<p>“Oh, I don’t want you”—then he added “yet! You
will appreciate, Mr. Bennett”—turning to Bob—“that
the more quietly—I want to show you all the consideration
possible—”</p>
<p>“I’ll go quietly,” muttered Bob. “No use raising a
row! I’ll go like a gentleman. I’ll make myself as
little obnoxious and objectionable to the rest of Mrs.
Ralston’s guests as possible.” Bitterly. “Good-by,
Miss Gerald.” That young lady didn’t answer. “Won’t
you say good-by?” repeated Bob. There was a gleam
of great pleasure in the hammer-thrower’s eyes now.
Bob had involuntarily put out his hand but Miss Gerald
would not see it. Indeed, she turned farther from him,
as if annoyed by Bob’s persistence. Bob’s hand fell
to his side, he drew himself up.</p>
<p>“I am ready, sir,” he said quietly to the monocle-man.</p>
<p>“Perhaps it would be as well if you accompanied
us,” observed the monocle-man to the hammer-thrower.</p>
<p>“Certainly.” The other understood. Bob was
strong and he might change his mind and be less lamblike
before reaching his destination. “It’s a disagreeable
job at best,” murmured the hammer-thrower, “but
I suppose I ought to see it through.”</p>
<p>“It’s nice of you,” said Miss Gerald in a low dull
tone.</p>
<p>A moment Bob’s eyes gleamed dangerously, then he
seemed to realize the presence of Miss Gerald’s other
guests once more and his handsome blond head
dropped. “I guess it’s your turn,” he said to the hammer-man.</p>
<p>Miss Dolly looked at the composed proud girl with
the “heart of stone.” The temperamental little thing’s
hands were tightly closed. Suddenly once more she
bent over to whisper—this time viciously—to Miss
Gerald. “He kisses beautifully,” she breathed. “And—and
I hate you!” Miss Gerald did not answer; nor
did she turn to regard Bob who quietly moved away
now with the monocle-man and the hammer-thrower.</p>
<h1 id='t9668'>CHAPTER XXII—A REAL BENEFACTOR</h1>
<p>Bob, the hammer-thrower and the monocle-man
together entered the little station-house in the
village. It wasn’t much of a lock-up, but it was big
enough to hold Bob and a few others, one of whom
had just been released as the trio of new-comers walked
in. His eye fell on Bob.</p>
<p>“That’s my man,” he exclaimed excitedly. “That’s
my escaped patient.”</p>
<p>“Yes, that’s he!” affirmed a second voice—that of
the commodore.</p>
<p>“Got him this time!” came jubilantly from another
side of the bare room, and Bob gazing, with no show of
emotion, in that direction, discovered Dickie and
Clarence were there too.</p>
<p>“Put me in the padded cell, would you?” said the
maniac-medico furiously. “I’ll see where you go.
Come on. The car is waiting. There won’t be any
window-bouquets this time, I promise you.”</p>
<p>Bob didn’t answer. He didn’t much care what they
said.</p>
<p>“I got Gee-gee on the phone,” went on Dan viciously,
“and she has it all down in black and white,
she tells me. The legal light up there has attended
to that. A parcel of outrageous falsehoods! The
audacity of that girl, too! When I showed her the
enormity of her conduct, she only gave a merry little
laugh. Said she was terribly fond of me, the minx!
And would I come and sit in the front row when she
was a bright and scintillating star?”</p>
<p>“And she said Gid-up wanted to know if I wouldn’t
like to gaze upon that cute little freckle once more?”
added Clarence in choked tones.</p>
<p>“And all that, on account of you!” exclaimed the
commodore, throwing out his arms and looking at the
culprit. Dickie didn’t say anything at the moment.
He only glared.</p>
<p>Bob regarded the three with lack-luster gaze. He
felt little interest in them now.</p>
<p>“Take him away!” said Dan, breathing hard. “Or
I may do him an injury.”</p>
<p>“Give him what’s coming to him,” breathed Dickie
hoarsely. “He’s got my girl hypnotized.”</p>
<p>“Come on,” said the maniac-medico sternly to Bob.
“Let’s waste no more time.”</p>
<p>“Hold on,” spoke the monocle-man quietly. “You
are a little premature, gentlemen.”</p>
<p>“What do <em>you</em> want to butt in for?” demanded the
commodore aggressively of the monocle-man.</p>
<p>“Mr. Bennett has accompanied me here as my prisoner.
Am I not right?” Appealing to the hammer-thrower.</p>
<p>“Correct,” said that gentleman regretfully.</p>
<p>“What’s he been doing besides wrecking homes?”
asked the commodore.</p>
<p>“A few articles of jewelry have been missing at
Mrs. Ralston’s,” said the hammer-thrower in that
same tone. “It’s a very regrettable affair. Miss Gerald,
for example, lost her ring and it was traced to
Mr. Bennett.”</p>
<p>Bob stood it patiently. He wondered if his day
would ever come.</p>
<p>“So?— He’s the merry little social-highwayman,
is he?” observed Dan. “The best I can say is, don’t
make a hero of him. Give him some real, old-fashioned
justice.”</p>
<p>“I’m afraid I can’t honestly extend my sympathy
to you,” remarked Clarence to Bob stiffly.</p>
<p>“I’m not sorry,” said Dickie frankly. “I’m glad.
Anyhow, Miss Dolly will despise you now.” With
a ring of triumph in his voice.</p>
<p>“No, she won’t,” observed Bob, breaking silence for
the first time. “It was being what people think I am
that made her fall in love with me.” He didn’t want
Dickie to feel too good. He remembered that unsportsmanlike
punch. “She’s my dear jolly little pal,”
Bob went on, “and she wanted to occupy an adjoining
cell.”</p>
<p>Dickie went up to Bob. “I’d like to give you another,”
he said in his nastiest accents.</p>
<p>“Gentlemen! Gentlemen!” It was the voice of
the man at the desk. Authority now spoke. Up to
now, amazement had held authority tongue-tied.
“The prisoner came quietly, Mr. Moriarity?” Authority
knew, then, the monocle-man. Evidently the
two had a secret understanding. “Has he confessed?”
“Not as yet,” said the monocle-man significantly.</p>
<p>“And I’m not going to,” spoke up Bob succinctly
to the magistrate. “I’m not guilty.”</p>
<p>“Then who is?” asked the monocle-man.</p>
<p>“You’ve got your hand on his arm,” said Bob in
that same forcible manner. The time had come for
him to assert himself, however ridiculous his affirmation
might sound. Authority should have the truth.
Bob blurted it out fearlessly, holding his head well up
as he spoke. “You’ve got your hand on his arm,” he
repeated.</p>
<p>Mr. Moriarity’s reply quite took their breath away,
especially Bob’s. “Guess you’re right,” he said
promptly, and something bright gleamed in his hand.
“Don’t move,” he said to the hammer-thrower.</p>
<p>“But aren’t you going to lock <em>him</em> up at all?” asked
the commodore in disappointed tones, indicating Bob,
after the monocle-man had shown the hammer-thrower
a warrant for his (the hammer-thrower’s)
arrest, and had, at the conclusion of certain formalities,
caused that dazed and angry individual to be led
away.</p>
<p>“I am certainly not going to lock Mr. Bennett up,”
laughed the monocle-man who was in the best of
humors.</p>
<p>The coup seemed to him a lovely one. For months
he had been on the trail of the hammer-thrower. He
told Bob—as dazed and bewildered as the hammer-thrower
by the unexpected turn of events—all about
it later. He had certainly taken an artistic way to
complete the affair. And later, not that night, Bob
learned, too, that it was Miss Gerald herself who had
suggested the way, she having inherited some of the
managerial genius of her father. Maybe, she was
not averse to Bob’s suffering a little after the
wholly-intolerable
way he had comported himself toward her
and others of her aunt’s guests. Maybe cruelty had
mingled somewhat with retaliation. Proud, regal
young womanhood sometimes can be cruel. But Bob
probably deserved all those twinges and pangs and
mournful emotions she had caused him. No one certainly
had ever talked to her as he had done.</p>
<p>“May I sit down?” said Bob at length to the magistrate.
He felt rather tired.</p>
<p>Authority gave him permission to sit.
“Well, if you’re not going to lock him up,” said
that maniac-med., looking viciously at Bob, “I am.”</p>
<p>“No, you’re not,” observed the monocle-man easily.
“Mr. Bennett is my friend. He has helped me immensely
in this affair. Had he not projected his
rather impetuous personality into it, certain difficulties
would not have been smoothed out so easily. He
created a diversion which threw the prisoner, naturally
deep and resourceful, somewhat off his guard. But
for Mr. Bennett’s whimsical and, at times, diverting
conduct,” with a smile at Bob, “my fight against him,”
nodding toward the cell, “might not have culminated
quite so soon. So,” he added to the enraged medico,
“Mr. Bennett has my full moral support, and, I may
say,” touching the pocket into which he had returned
that something bright, “my physical support as well.”
“But what about the treatment I have received?”
stormed the med. “Locked up like—?”</p>
<p>“You shouldn’t have been prowling around. Anyhow,
I shall advise my good friend, Mr. Bennett, that
should you seek to annoy him further, or to lay a single
finger on him, he will have an excellent case for damages.
I can explain away a great deal that is inexplicable
to the rest of you, and that explanation will
serve fully to rehabilitate Mr. Bennett in the esteem
of certain people as a not unnormal person. How far
I can restore his popularity,” with a laugh, “is another
matter.”</p>
<p>Bob stared straight ahead. “How did you do it?”
he said to the monocle-man. “What made you certain?”</p>
<p>“I saw him place the ring in your pocket. Feel
here,” walking over to Bob. The latter felt where
the other indicated. “A little vest-pocket camera!”
said the monocle-man softly. “I photographed the
act—the outstretched hand with the ring in it!—you,
unsuspecting, half sprawling over the green felt of the
table! your coat tails inviting the ring—Besides,
one of my men took the place of that outside-operator
and received a certain little article of jewelry that
night you came blundering back to Mrs. Ralston’s.
We nabbed the outside-operator and—well, he’s told
certain things.” With satisfaction. “We have, in
short, a clear case.”</p>
<p>Bob held his head. “It’s whirling,” he said. “I’ll
get some things straightened out after a little, I suppose.”</p>
<p>“That’s right,” observed the monocle-man.</p>
<p>“There are some things you can’t straighten out,”
said Dan in an ugly tone. “This is all very well for
you, but what about us?”</p>
<p>Just at that moment there was a flutter of skirts at
the door.</p>
<hr class='tb'/>
<p>Gee-gee and Gid-up came in, the former in a state
of great agitation.</p>
<p>“How dared you?” she gasped, going up to the
monocle-man and standing with arms akimbo.</p>
<p>“Send you that note, commanding your presence
here?” said the monocle-man. “I dared, my dear,”
he added slowly, “because I hold the cards.”</p>
<p>“Don’t you ‘dear’ me,” she retorted stormily.</p>
<p>“I wouldn’t, seriously,” he returned. “It might
be dangerous. Women like you are dangerous, you
know. I fancy our friends here,” glancing toward the
commodore and Clarence, “have found that out. But
it will be a lesson. ‘We’ll never wander more from
our own fireside,’” he hummed.</p>
<p>“Well,” said Gee-gee, shaking her auburn tresses,
“those were pretty bold statements of what you could
do to me, in that note you sent.”</p>
<p>“They were true, my dear.”</p>
<p>The green eyes flared. Gee-gee was shaking all
over. Gid-up looked rather frightened.</p>
<p>“Take it easy,” said the monocle-man.</p>
<p>“I’d like to see you prove what you can do,” she
returned. “You say I have framed-up a lot of false-hoods—a
tissue of lies—in that affidavit the lawyer
at Mrs. Ralston’s drew up. I tell you they’re all
true.” Dan looked weak. “Everything I’ve told happened
just at I said it did, and he knows it.” Pointing
a finger at the commodore.</p>
<p>“I wonder if I ought not to put you in jail now?”
said the monocle-man meditatively. “There’s a cell
vacant next to the hammer-thrower. You would be
congenial spirits.”</p>
<p>“It’s proofs I’m asking, Mr. Detective,” retorted
Gee-gee, apparently not greatly abashed by this threat.
She was accustomed to hitting back.</p>
<p>“Yes, it’s proofs,” said Gid-up, but in weaker accents.</p>
<p>The monocle-man shook a reproving finger at
Gid-up. “You’re in bad company, my dear,” he observed.
“You’re out of Gee-gee’s class. You’re just
trying to be in it.”</p>
<p>“I don’t want any of your impertinence,” answered
Gid-up with a faint imitation of Gee-gee’s manner.
“He’s a proper bad one.” Pointing to Clarence who
presented a picture of abject misery. “And when I
tell all the things he done to me—”</p>
<p>“But you won’t tell them.”</p>
<p>“I have.” Defiantly. “In that paper the lawyer
drew up.”</p>
<p>“But you’re going to sign a little paper I have here,
repudiating all that,” he answered her.</p>
<p>“Oh, am I?” Elevating her turned-up nose.</p>
<p>“You are.” Blandly.</p>
<p>“Guess again,” said Gid-up saucily.</p>
<p>“You can’t prove what we told in that affidavit isn’t
true,” reaffirmed Gee-gee. Only she and Gid-up
could know it was a “frame-up”; they had builded
carefully and were sure of their ground. “We know
our rights and we’re going to have them. We’re not
afraid of you.”</p>
<p>“Then why are you here?” quietly.</p>
<p>“That lawyer at the house said we might as well
see you, just to call your bluff. He said, since we had
told the truth, we had nothing to fear.”</p>
<p>“I don’t think you’re quite so confident as you
seem,” observed the monocle-man. “My note awoke
a little uneasiness, or you wouldn’t be here. This
young lady,” turning to Gid-up, “suffered a mild case
of stage fright, if I am any judge of human nature.”</p>
<p>“Me?” said Gid-up. “I defy you.”</p>
<p>“Here’s the answer,” replied the monocle-man, taking
another paper from his pocket.</p>
<p>“What’s that?” said Gee-gee scornfully. “I suppose
it’s some lies from him.” Alluding to the commodore.
“The lawyer told me to be prepared for them.”</p>
<p>“No; it isn’t that. It’s only a stenographic report
of a conversation you and your friend had together
in your room, the night you arrived at Mrs. Ralston’s.”</p>
<p>“A stenographic report? Nonsense!” Sharply.
Gee-gee remembered all about that conversation.
“How could you—”</p>
<p>“There’s a dictograph in the room you occupied,
my dear,” observed the monocle-man.</p>
<p>“A dic—” Gee-gee seemed to turn green. “Good
Gawd!” she said.</p>
<hr class='tb'/>
<p>It wasn’t very long thereafter that Gee-gee and
Gid-up departed.</p>
<p>“Back to the old life!” said Gee-gee wearily. “And
just when I thought my ambition to be a star was
coming true.”</p>
<p>“Life is sure tough,” observed Gid-up, abandoning
her society manner.</p>
<p>“I’m sick of the whole thing. Got a mind to jump
in the river.”</p>
<p>“Gas for me!” from poor Gid-up wearily.</p>
<p>“No, you won’t. And I won’t. We’ll just go on.
Lord! how long.”</p>
<p>“Anyhow, that detective promised to introduce us
to a real Russian grand duke who’s in old New York.
Maybe we can get in the papers on that.”</p>
<p>“Perhaps.” More thoughtfully from Gee-gee. “It
wasn’t so worse of the detective to promise that, after
he’d got us down and walked on us.”</p>
<p>“You must make dukie drink out of your slipper,”
suggested Gid-up. “The detective said he was mad
after beautiful stage girls. Grand dukes always are.”
Hopefully. “And if you do make him do that, it would
be heralded from coast to coast.”</p>
<p>“It’s as good as done,” said Gee-gee confidently.
“It’ll prove me a great actress, sure.” In a brighter
tone.</p>
<p>“I always said you had talent,” remarked Gid-up.</p>
<p>“Cheese it,” retorted Gee-gee elegantly. “Ain’t
you the fond flatterer!”</p>
<p>“Anyhow, I’m glad I don’t have to do society talk
any more,” said Gid-up, and stuck a piece of gum in
her mouth.</p>
<p>“Yes,” said Gee-gee, “my jaws is most broke.”</p>
<p>“Maybe you’d better tighten up your hobble a little
for dukie,” suggested Gid-up.</p>
<p>“Have to stand still the rest of my life if I did,”
observed Gee-gee, swishing along about six inches a
step.</p>
<p>“You could divide it a little.”</p>
<p>“So I could.”</p>
<p>By this time they had forgotten about the river,
or taking gas. The duke had already become a real
person in their lives and they talked on, devising stunts
for his Vivacious Greatness. By this time, too, the
monocle-man seemed to them a real benefactor.</p>
<p>Meanwhile the “real benefactor” had been reading
from that stenographic report to Dan and the others.
The commodore nearly jumped out of his boots for
joy.</p>
<p>“Read that again,” he said.</p>
<p>The monocle-man, reading: “‘This ain’t half bad
enough. You think up something now, Gee-gee.’</p>
<p>“‘Doping a poor little thing is always good stuff
to spring on a jury, Gid-up. And you could make
yourself up young with your hair done up in a pigtail,
with a cute little baby-blue bow on the end.’</p>
<p>“‘But that sounds old, Gee-gee. You can sure invent
something new—’” etc., etc.</p>
<p>The monocle-man finished reading and laid down
the paper. “There you are, gentlemen,” he observed
in a lively tone. “The stenographers will swear to
that. They were dressed as house-maids, but at night
and on certain occasions, they used one of the rooms
Mrs. Ralston placed at my disposal as an office. When
I came down here I didn’t expect to be involved in
a domestic drama. It rather forced itself upon me.
It came as part of the day’s work. I overheard your
conversation with Miss Dolly that night.” Significantly
to Bob. That young gentleman flushed.</p>
<p>“I have taken the liberty of destroying the report
of that conversation, I may add. Miss Dolly is charming.”
With a smile. “I, also, had a record of your
conversation with these three gentlemen”—indicating
Dan, Clarence and Dickie—“after they entered your
room one night, via the trellis and the window. That
conversation introduced me into the domestic drama.
I became an actor in it whether I would or not. But
for my whispered instructions to one of my assistants
in the garden, you three gentlemen would have been
arrested.” Dan stared at Clarence in momentary consternation.
“You did not need the golf-club because
my man removed the dog.”</p>
<p>“It seems,” said Dan effusively to the monocle-man,
“you have been our good angel. If any remuneration—?”</p>
<p>“No,” answered the monocle-man. “What I have
done for you was only incidental and my reward was
the enjoyment I got out of the affair—in watching
how the threads crossed and recrossed, and how they
tangled and untangled. It was better than going to
a show. It made work a pleasure. Besides, I shall
be well rewarded for what I have accomplished in
another direction.” Looking toward the cell.</p>
<p>“I tried to get him in England and failed. In
France, the story was the same. He is rather a remarkable
personality. A born criminal and an actor,
as well! Of good family, he wedged his way into
society, through the all-round amateur athletic route.
He was generally well liked.” Bob thought of Miss
Gerald and looked down. He couldn’t help wondering
if she would not greatly have preferred his
(Bob’s) occupying that cell, instead of the other man
who had seemed to interest her so much.</p>
<p>“Now for Mrs. Dan,” observed the commodore,
jubilantly waving the stenographic report. “This will
bring her to time.”</p>
<p>“And my wife, too!” said Clarence with equal joy.</p>
<p>“I thought I would save you gentlemen some trouble
and so have already placed the report in the ladies’
hands,” said the monocle-man affably. “Indeed, they
came to me afterward and told me they had been
shamefully deceived. Mrs. Dan looked as if she had
had a good cry—from joy, no doubt. Mrs. Clarence’s
voice was tremulous. Same cause, I am sure. I think
you will find them contrite and anxious to make up.”</p>
<p>“This is great,” said Dan.</p>
<p>“Glorious!” observed Clarence.</p>
<p>“Think of it! No public disgrace!”</p>
<p>“No being held up as monsters in the press!”</p>
<p>“It’s too good to be true.” The commodore threw
out his arms and advanced toward the monocle-man.</p>
<p>But the latter waved him away. “Save your embraces
for your wives,” he observed.</p>
<p>“I love all the world,” said Dan.</p>
<p>“Me, too!” from Clarence.</p>
<p>“I presume I am free to take my departure, gentlemen?”
said Bob, rising.</p>
<p>“You are free as the birds of the air for all of me,”
answered the monocle-man.</p>
<p>“Hold on one moment,” begged the commodore.
“No; I’m not going to detain you forcibly. As a
friend I ask you to wait.” Bob paused. “I’m a good
fellow,” said Dan effusively, “and I don’t wish the
world harm. I don’t want you to go wandering
around any more as you are. Why, you’re a regular
Frankenstein. You’re an iron automaton that goes
about trampling on people. After all I’ve gone
through, I have charity toward others. I won’t have
you treading on people’s finer sensibilities and smashing
connubial peace and comfort all to splinters.”</p>
<p>“But what can I do?” suggested Bob. He meant
the three weeks weren’t yet up.</p>
<p>“Here’s what I propose to Clarence and Dickie. I
see now you’ll win, anyhow. You’ve got the grit and
the nerve. So as long as we have simply got to pay
in the end, why not do so at once and so spare others?
That’ll be the way I’ll pay him.” Alluding to the
monocle-man. “It’s my way of showing my gratitude
for what he’s done. And now I think of it,
I can’t see that I ought to blame you so much, Bob,
for all that has transpired.”</p>
<p>“Oh, you don’t?” With faint irony.</p>
<p>“No; you only did what you had to, and maybe we
were a little rough. Forget it.” The commodore
extended his hand.</p>
<p>The act melted Bob. He took it. “Good friends,
once more!” chirped Dan, and extended an arm to
include Clarence. “You’ve won. The money’s fairly
yours, Bob. Only as a personal favor, I ask you to
be, at once, as you were. Be your old natural self
immediately.”</p>
<p>“I’ll pay my share to have him that way again,”
said Clarence heartily. “I want to spare the world
too. Besides, he’s won all right enough.”</p>
<p>“It’s three weeks or nothing from me,” said Dickie.
“You chaps may want to spare the world, but I don’t
want to spare him.”</p>
<p>“I’ll pay for Dickie,” replied good old Dan. “And
gladly!”</p>
<p>Dickie shrugged. Dan wrote out a check. “Congratulations!”
he said. “And for us, too!” Turning
to Clarence. “Think of the thousands in alimony it
might have cost us!”</p>
<p>“We’ve simply got to call a halt on old Bob,” said
Clarence fervently. “Bet’s off! We lose.”</p>
<p>Bob took the check. “I believe I am entitled to it,
for I certainly would have stuck it out now. I am
sure I wouldn’t do it all over again, though, for ten
times the amount. Nevertheless, I thank you.” He
shook himself. “Free! Isn’t it great? Will you do
something for me?” To the monocle-man.</p>
<p>“Gladly,” was the reply. “I was secretly informed
of that wager of yours and I was immensely interested
in your little social experiment. You see I make my
living by prevarication and subterfuges. And that”—with
a laugh—“is more than a man can make by telling
the truth. It’s a wicked world. Fraud and humbug
are trumps.”</p>
<p>“What I want you to do,” said Bob, ignoring this
homily, “is to express my grip to New York. Also,
tell Miss Gerald that I’ve gone and kindly thank Mrs
Ralston and Miss Gerald for asking me down.”</p>
<p>“Why don’t you thank them yourself?”</p>
<p>“I think they would be more pleased if I complied
with the formalities by proxy.”</p>
<p>“Shall I add you had a charming time?”</p>
<p>“You may use your own judgment.”</p>
<p>Bob walked to the door.</p>
<p>“I guess it’s I who am crazy,” said the maniac-doctor,
again waking up.</p>
<h1 id='t10275'>CHAPTER XXIII—MAKING GOOD</h1>
<p>Bob sent dad a modest-sized check the next day.
“Result of hustling,” he wrote. “Spend freely.
There’ll be more coming presently.” Then Bob went
down on the narrow road that isn’t straight, but that
has a crook in it. He stopped somewhere near the
crook, and entering an office greeted a melancholy-looking
man who had “bad business” and “country
going to pot” written all over his face. The melancholy
man was a club acquaintance.</p>
<p>“What’s the most abused and worst thing on the
street that isn’t straight?” said Bob debonairly.</p>
<p>“That’s right. Call us names,” replied the melancholy
man with a sigh. “Everybody’s doing it.”</p>
<p>“Have you got something so awful people turn their
heads away when you speak of it?”</p>
<p>“There’s the Utopian,” observed the other. “Only
a buzzard would get near it.”</p>
<p>“Do they call the promoter a thief?”</p>
<p>“They do.”</p>
<p>“And is he crazy?”</p>
<p>“He is. It’s either jail or a lunatic asylum for
him.”</p>
<p>Bob handed what was left of the commodore’s
check to the melancholy man. “Buy Utopian,” he
said.</p>
<p>“All right,” answered the melancholy man listlessly.
He was beyond feeling any emotion.</p>
<p>“I believe in Utopian,” observed Bob. “I have
here,” touching his forehead, “inside information that
it is an excellent little railroad property.”</p>
<p>“Oh, it isn’t a railroad,” said the melancholy man.
“It’s—”</p>
<p>“Don’t tell me what it is,” retorted Bob. “Repeat
some of those things the world calls the promoter.”</p>
<p>The melancholy man was obliging.</p>
<p>“Heavens! He must be an awful honest man!”
said Bob and started toward the door, where he turned.
“Pyramid with the profits.” And Bob walked out.</p>
<p>That afternoon he went to a real-estate man and
asked where he could lease a small factory. While
at college he had invented a small appliance for automobiles,
which he felt sure was good and would commend
itself to manufacturers. Bob knew about all
there was to know about a car. After he had looked
at several old deserted buildings on the outskirts, any
one of which might answer his purpose, Bob strolled
into a number of automobile agencies near Columbus
Square, and showed them his little patent. The men
in charge were willing to express an opinion; several
appeared interested. Of course, Bob would ultimately
have to go to the “higher-ups,” but he wanted
first to find out what these practical chaps thought.
One of them even asked Bob if he wanted a partner?
Bob didn’t. He had all the capital needed, he replied.</p>
<p>He was taking a serious sober view of life now.
He felt himself no longer “darn fool Bob,” or careless
Bob, or lazy Bob. He might have done something
with his little device long ago, but he had forgotten
all about it. Its creation had been a passing whim.
Bob really had a good head for machinery though,
and now he was beginning to feel out his path. He
wanted to work hard, too, which was a novel sensation.
It felt, also, like a permanent sensation. Meeting
several chaps, he refused their invitations to partake
of the sparkling, much to their surprise, as heretofore
he had been a prince of good fellows. Henceforth,
however, he was going to be king of himself.</p>
<p>That night, in the old home, in the old square,
Dolly called him up by telephone.</p>
<p>“How <em>could</em> you disappoint me so!” said jolly little
pal. “The idea of your just pretending to be a burglar.”</p>
<p>“Me, pretend?” Bob laughed. “I say, that’s good.
Didn’t I tell you all along I wasn’t?”</p>
<p>“But why didn’t you <em>make</em> me believe you weren’t?”
retorted little pal reproachfully. “To think of your
deceiving me like that!”</p>
<p>“Deceive you? That’s good, too. Why, I told you
again and again I was just a plain ordinary person.
You were just bound to idealize me!”</p>
<p>There was a brief pause. “Are you so disappointed
in me, you are going to disown me now?” continued
Bob.</p>
<p>“No-a. I’m still your jolly little pal. Only to
think though, there never was a chance for those adjoining
cells, after all!”</p>
<p>“Well, there seemed a good chance, anyhow.”</p>
<p>“Yes, it was nice and exciting while it lasted.” The
temperamental little thing sighed. “It’s awful humdrum
up here now.”</p>
<p>Bob didn’t ask any questions about the people up
there. “You ought to have fallen in love with the
hammer-thrower,” he said. “He was the real thing.”</p>
<p>“I suppose I should have,” she seemed to agree.
“Wasn’t I stupid? Never mind. Say something nice.”</p>
<p>“Like you,” said Bob.</p>
<p>“Heaps? I need cheering.”</p>
<p>“Heaps.”</p>
<p>“Much obliged. You’re awfully good. What are
you doing this evening?”</p>
<p>“I was sitting by the fire in dad’s old-fashioned
den, thinking and dreaming.”</p>
<p>“All alone?”</p>
<p>“Entirely.”</p>
<p>“What were you thinking of?”</p>
<p>“Machinery. And a factory.”</p>
<p>“And will it have a tall chimney that belches smoke?”</p>
<p>“I trust ultimately to attain to the kind of a chimney
you refer to. At present, I shall have to content
myself with a comparatively insignificant one. I have
visions of a chimney four hundred feet high some
day.”</p>
<p>“Belching ugly smoke?”</p>
<p>“It won’t look ugly to me. It’ll look blissful.”</p>
<p>The biggest sigh of all quivered from afar. “Another
dream shattered! My! but I’m growing up
fast. I feel a million years old. Anyhow, I’ll never
marry Dickie.”</p>
<p>“Wouldn’t if I were you. He doesn’t fight fair.
Before he got through he’d have all your dad’s chimneys,
as well as his own, and then he’d put you on an
allowance. You’d have to account for every pin and
needle you bought.”</p>
<p>“Yes; I know. When I do find the right man I’ll
bring him to you and let you pass in judgment. You
shall tell me whether I can or can’t.”</p>
<p>“All right—though isn’t that rather a paternal
prerogative?”</p>
<p>“Oh, dad always lets me do what I want. You’re
the only man that has ever dared oppose me.”</p>
<p>“But suppose I did oppose you in a matter of such
importance?”</p>
<p>Miss Dolly thought. “We won’t cross that bridge
before we come to it. You said you were thinking
<em>and</em> dreaming. I know what you were thinking about.
Now, what were you dreaming about all by your
lonely, sitting by the fire?”</p>
<p>Bob was glad he didn’t have to blurt out the truth
any more. He evaded. “Did I say dreaming?” he
asked.</p>
<p>“You did. Was it of some one?”</p>
<p>“Pooh! What nonsense!”</p>
<p>“Oh, it isn’t nonsense to do that.”</p>
<p>“I was only thinking of chimneys and things like
that,” returned Bob. That was an out-and-outer. He
shuddered to think of the answer he would have had
to make a few days ago.</p>
<p>“Never mind,” said the jolly little pal. “You
needn’t tell me. There are some things we keep
locked up, forever and ever, in the inner sanctums
of our hearts, aren’t there?” Sadly. “And we die
and they are buried with us. Oh, dear! I’m beginning
to feel dreadful. Only jolly little pal is awfully
sorry.” For him, she meant. Bob winced. “I
hate to think of you sitting there, poor dear, all alone,
and—and—”</p>
<p>“I’m having a bully time—honest,” said Bob. “I
really am. I’m planning out my future. I’m going
to do something. I’m tired of being nothing. I’ll
work right with the workmen at first.”</p>
<p>“And you will be all perspirey and covered with
soot?” In horror.</p>
<p>“I’ll be worse than that. I’ll be sweaty and covered
with soot,” said Bob practically.</p>
<p>Dolly groaned. “It seems to me as if everything
is upside down.”</p>
<p>“No. Downside down. ‘Life is real; life is earnest,’”
he quoted, laughing.</p>
<p>“Oh, dear! That solemn sound! I can tell you
are terribly determined.” He did not answer. “Well,
good-by, great, big, perspirey—I mean sweaty, sooty
old pal!”</p>
<p>“Good-by, Dolly. And thank you for calling me
up. It did me good to hear little pal’s voice. Wish
me luck.”</p>
<p>“I’ll send you a horseshoe to-morrow,” she laughed.
And then suddenly, as an afterthought— “By the
way, I have a ’fession to make.”</p>
<p>“All right. ’Fess ahead.”</p>
<p>“Well, I don’t suppose I really and truly—deep
down, you know—actually ever did quite think you
were a regular burglar. I guess it was the dramatic
situation that appealed to me. I’ve often thought I
had ‘histrionic ability’ and you did make such a big,
bold, handsome, darling make-believe burglar to play
with, I just couldn’t resist.”</p>
<p>“I understand!” said Bob. “I guess—deep down—I
guessed as much.” And rang off.</p>
<p>Bob went back to the fireplace. Was he dreaming
now or only thinking? Dolly’s voice had taken him
back to Mrs. Ralston’s, and the coals now framed
a face. He looked quickly from them, his eyes following
the smoke of his pipe. But the smoke now
framed the face. Bob half-closed his eyes an instant,
then resolutely he laid down his pipe and went to
bed. Dad had closed the rather spacious old-fashioned
house when he went away, and a momentary
feeling of loneliness assailed Bob, as he realized there
was no other person in the place, but he fought it
down. Work was his incentive now—hard work—</p>
<p>The next day he learned they had lodged the promoter
in jail. The big men had gone gunning for
him, and, as usual, they got him. They got the “Utopian,”
too. They took that because there wasn’t anything
else to take. Incidentally, they discredited the
broker’s statement that no one but a buzzard would
go near it. Or, maybe, some of the big men were
buzzards in disguise. Anyhow, they had the Utopian
on their hands, and after they had settled with the
promoter who had dared cross the trail of the big
interests in his operations, they poked their fingers
into Utopian and prodded it and examined it more
carefully and discovered that with “honest judicial
management” and a proper application of more funds
that which had been but an odorous prospect might
be converted into a “property.” The promoter had
taken funds which he shouldn’t so he was out of their
way, until he got pardoned.</p>
<p>The Utopian accordingly now began to soar. There
were plenty of people who would sniff at it in its new
aspect, and take a bite, too. A shoal of speculators
wanted to get aboard. That “honest management”
was a bait; that “property” probability became a “sure
thing.” Big names were juggled in little offices. The
usual thing happened—just one of those common occurrences
hardly worth describing—only later it would
probably be included in a congressional investigation
and there would be a few reverberations at Albany.
Bob pulled out in about two days.</p>
<p>“How’d you know?” said the broker.</p>
<p>“Fellow feeling. Been called a thief and a crazy
man, myself.”</p>
<p>“What you want to buy now? The next rankest
thing I know of is—”</p>
<p>Bob shook his head. “Never again. Good-by forever.”</p>
<p>“Good-by,” said the melancholy man. He thought
he would see Bob down there again some day, but he
never did. Bob went to a bank and opened an account.
He wasn’t exactly rich but he had a nice comfortable
feeling. Moreover he expected to build solidly.
He leased the factory and then he went to work.
Dad came home. He didn’t seem much interested in
what Bob was doing. He loafed around and told fish
stories. Bob got up about five a.m. but dad didn’t
arise until nine. Sometimes he had his breakfast in
bed and had his man bring him the newspaper. Bob
didn’t have a man, though he soon began to prosper.
The device was considered necessary in the trade; it
proved practical.</p>
<p>Bob added to his factory and built a fair-sized
chimney. Dreamily he wondered if it would realize
jolly little chum’s idea of a chimney. He had to cut
out all the social functions now for he was so tired
when he got home he wanted only his dinner and
his pipe and bed. Dad, however, stayed out late. He
remarked once he thought he would learn to tango.
Bob never knew though whether he carried out the
idea or not.</p>
<p>The newspapers, a few months later, apprised Bob
that Gee-gee had landed the grand duke. A snapshot
revealed him imbibing from Gee-gee’s Cinderella
slipper. Possibly the grand duke was enraged over
the snap-shot. More likely, however, he didn’t care;
he was so high up he could do anything and snap
his fingers at the world. Bob permitted himself a
little recreation; out of mild curiosity, he went to
see Gee-gee. She now had a fair-sized part and was
talked about. Incidentally, she had acquired a few
additional wriggles.</p>
<p>His Vivacious Highness sat in a box and Gee-gee
wriggled mostly for him. She hardly looked at the
audience, but the audience didn’t act offended. It
applauded. Gee-gee’s dream had come true. She
was a star. And to her credit she reached out a helping
hand to Gid-up. The latter now said more than
“Send for the doctor.” She had eight lines—which
was certainly getting on some. Bob, however, didn’t
notice Dan or Clarence in the audience. They were
probably billing and cooing at home now. Only grand
dukes can afford to toy with Gee-gees. Bob didn’t
stay to see and hear it all for a little of Gee-gee went
a long way, and besides, he had to get up early. Dad
though, who accompanied Bob, said he would stay
right through.</p>
<p>Once on Fifth Avenue, Bob passed Miss Gerald;
she was just getting out of her car. An awful temptation
seized him to stop, but he managed to suppress
it, for he had himself fairly in hand by this time.
He saw they would almost meet, but there were many
people and, in the press, he didn’t have to see her. So
he didn’t. He felt sure she would cut him if he did.
It was the first foolish thing he had done for some
time; he realized that when he got away. But what
was he to do? He objected to being cut, and by her,
of all persons. He regretted the incident very much.
It hurt his pride and, of course, he had earned her
dislike.</p>
<p>Bob hied him factoryward and toiled mightily that
day. It was work—work—though to what end? If
he only knew! He had tried to tell himself that he
was learning to forget, that he was becoming reconciled
to the inevitable, but that quick glimpse he had
caught of her from a distance, before he drifted by
with the others, had set his pulses tingling. For a
moment now Bob gave way to dreaming; the day
was almost done. He sat with his head on his hand
and his elbow on the desk. He had shown he was
more than a dancing man. He would now have to
fight an even harder battle. He would have to take
her out of his heart and mind.</p>
<p>But he couldn’t do that. It was impossible, when
his whole nature clamored for her. He yielded now
to the dubious luxury of thinking of her. He hoped
he wouldn’t see her again and then gradually he would
win in that fight against nature—or do his best to.
Yes; he must do his best; he must, he repeated to
himself, closing a firm hand resolutely. Then he
started and stared—at a vision standing before him.</p>
<p>“Why did you cut me to-day?”</p>
<h1 id='t10676'>CHAPTER XXIV—AT THE PORTALS</h1>
<p>It was some time before Bob recovered sufficiently
to answer. Fortunately they were alone in Bob’s
private office. From below came the sound of hammers,
but that and the dingy surroundings did not
seem to disconcert her. She looked at Bob coldly,
the violet eyes full of directness.</p>
<p>“I—well, I feared you would cut me,” stammered
Bob. “Won’t—won’t you sit down?”</p>
<p>“No, thank you. At least, not yet. I,” accusingly,
“am not accustomed to being cut, and if any of my
friends cut me, I want to know why. That’s why
I am here.”</p>
<p>She was her father’s daughter at that moment—straight,
forceful.</p>
<p>“But,” said Bob eagerly, looking once more the
way he used to, before he had got into this sobering
business of manufacturer, “that’s just the point. You
see I felt I had somehow forfeited my right to be
one of your friends. I felt out of the pale.”</p>
<p>“Do you think you deserve to forfeit the right?”</p>
<p>“I—perhaps. I don’t know. I’m very confused
about all that happened at your aunt’s place.”</p>
<p>Was that the shadow of a smile on the proud lips?
Bob wasn’t looking at her. He dared not. He was
talking to a drawing of his device.</p>
<p>“Perhaps you have heard of that confounded
wager,” he went on. “I told you why I—I didn’t
want to see you. At least, I think I did.”</p>
<p>“I have a vague impression of something of the
kind,” said the girl.</p>
<p>“And there you are,” observed Bob helplessly. “It
was an awful muddle, all right. You certainly punished
me some, though. Honestly, if I offended you,
you did get back good and hard.”</p>
<p>“Did I?” said she tentatively. “Is that a drawing
of it on the wall?” She was looking at the device.</p>
<p>“Yes. That’s what I make.”</p>
<p>“Won’t you show me around?”</p>
<p>Bob did, walking as in a dream among the dingy
workmen who paused as the vision passed. For a
long time they talked—just plain ordinary talk. Then
he told her how he was inventing something else and
Miss Gerald listened while all differences seemed magically
to have dropped between them. Drinking deep
of the joy of the moment, Bob yielded to the unadulterated
happiness that went with being near her. He
forgot all about the long future when he would see
her no more.</p>
<p>Finally Miss Gerald got up to go. They had returned
to Bob’s office and she had seated herself in a
shabby old chair.</p>
<p>Bob’s face fell. His heart had been beating fast
and the old light had come to his eyes.</p>
<p>“Going?” he said awkwardly.</p>
<p>“Yes.”</p>
<p>She put out her hand and Bob took it, looking into
her eyes. Then—he never knew how it happened—he
had her in his arms. Bang! bang! went Bob’s
hammers below and they seemed to be competing with
the beating of his heart. At length the girl stirred
slightly. She was wonderful in her proud compliance
to Bob’s somewhat chaotic and over-powering
expression of his emotions. “I suffered, too, a little,
perhaps,” she said.</p>
<p>That nearly completed Bob’s undoing. “You! you!”
he said, holding her from him and regarding her
face eagerly, devouringly.</p>
<p>“Yes,” the proud lips curled a little, “I haven’t
really a heart of stone, you know.”</p>
<p>Then Bob became chaotic once more for it was as
if heaven had been hurled at him. He spoke burning
words of truth and this time they did not get him
into trouble. She drank them all in, too. Then he
began to ask questions in that same chaotic manner.
He was so masterful she had to answer.</p>
<p>“Yes, yes,” she said, “of course, I do.”</p>
<p>“When did it begin?”</p>
<p>“A long, long time ago.”</p>
<p>“You have loved me a long time?” he exulted and
drew a deep breath. “A moment ago I was pondering
on the problems of life and wondering what was
the use of it all? Now—” He paused.</p>
<p>“Now?” said the girl and her eyes were direct and
clear. The love light in them—for it was that—shone
as the light of stars.</p>
<p>Bob threw out his arms. “Life is great,” he said.</p>
<p>A moment they stood apart and looked at each
other. “It can’t be,” said Bob. “It is too much to
believe. I certainly must prove it once more.”</p>
<p>“One moment,” said Miss Gerald. “Dolly told me
you kissed her.”</p>
<p>“I did.”</p>
<p>“Why, if as you say, it was only I—?”</p>
<p>Bob was silent.</p>
<p>“Did—did she ask you to?”</p>
<p>Bob did not answer.</p>
<p>“You don’t answer?” The violet eyes studied him
discerningly.</p>
<p>“All I can say is I did kiss her.” He would not
betray jolly little pal.</p>
<p>The violet eyes looked satisfied. “You have answered,”
she said. “I think I understand the situation
thoroughly.”</p>
<p>Bob impetuously wanted to demonstrate once more
that she was really she—that it wasn’t a dream—but
she held him back and looked into his eyes. “You’ve
said a good many things,” said Miss Gerald. “But
there’s one you haven’t.”</p>
<p>“What?”</p>
<p>“It’s one you really ought to ask, after all this demonstration.”</p>
<p>“Oh!” said Bob loudly. “Will you marry me?”</p>
<p>“Yes,” she answered. And for the first time voluntarily
offered him her lips.</p>
<p>Suddenly the sound of hammers stopped.</p>
<p>“What’s happening?” she asked.</p>
<p>“Closing time. May I see you to your car?”</p>
<p>“Yes,” she laughed, “if you will get in.”</p>
<p>“I’ll get in if you won’t be ashamed of having a
rather dingy-looking individual by your side?”</p>
<p>“I’m proud of you, Bob,” said her father’s daughter.
“And I believe in you.”</p>
<p>“And—?” he suggested.</p>
<p>“I love you,” she said simply.</p>
<p>Bob tried to say something, but words didn’t seem
to come. Then silently he opened the door and they
passed out. He helped her in the car and held a
small gloved hand all the way down Fifth Avenue.
Young people who can be cruel are, also, capable of
going to the other extreme. It wasn’t Fifth Avenue
for Bob. It was Paradise.</p>
<p>Dad heard the news that night. “Of course,” he
said. “I expected it.” Then, with a twinkle of the
eye. “But I’m glad you got started in life for yourself
first, son. I was afraid you would ask her before
you had the right.”</p>
<p>“You afraid? Then you did suggest my doing it,
just to try me, to see what kind of stuff I was made
of? I thought so. I told her so.” Bob’s eyes now
began to twinkle. “Sure that’s all you did, dad, to
find out if I was a real man or a sawdust one?”</p>
<p>“Perhaps I did misrepresent slightly the state of
the parental exchequer. As a matter of fact, I’m
still pretty well off, Bob. Though they did bounce
me a little, I was not so much ruined as I let people
think. I didn’t deny those bankruptcy stories, because
I wanted you to make good, dear boy. And you have!”
There was pride and affection in dad’s tones. “But
now that you have, there will be no further need to
continue that Japanese custom. I have ample for
my simple needs and a little left over to go fishing
with.”</p>
<p>Bob might have protested, but just at that moment
a car swung in front of the house, where it stopped.
On the back seat sat a lady. The driver got out and
started up the steps to dad’s house. By this time
Bob was coming down the steps. He hastened to the
lady.</p>
<p>“So good of you!” he said, his eyes alight. “I
ordered to-day that car of my own,” he added, leaning
over the door.</p>
<p>“Are you sure you can afford it yet?” she laughed.</p>
<p>“Sure. And it will be a beauty. As fit for you as
any car could be!”</p>
<p>“Are you going like that—hatless?” she asked.</p>
<p>“I—well, I was wondering if I couldn’t induce you
to come in for a moment?” Eagerly. “Want you
to meet dad. Or shall I bring him out here?”</p>
<p>“I’ll go in, of course,” she said, rising at once. “And
I shall be very glad.”</p>
<p>“He—he was only trying me out, after all,” spoke
Bob as he opened the door of the car. “That advice,
I mean. You remember? And he pretended to be
broke, too, just to test me. He told me just now.”</p>
<p>“I think I shall like your father,” said Miss Gerald.</p>
<p>“Oh, we’re bully chums!”</p>
<p>By this time they were in the house. Bob took her
by the hand and led her to dad.</p>
<p>“I remember your mother and I knew your father,”
said dad, when Bob had presented him. “Your mother
was very beautiful.”</p>
<p>Gwendoline thanked him, while Bob gazed upon
her with adoring eyes.</p>
<p>“Isn’t she wonderful, dad?” he said.</p>
<p>“Wonderful, indeed,” said dad fondly, a little sadly.
Perhaps he was thinking of the time when his own
bride had stood right there, in the home he had
bought for her. Perhaps he saw her eyes with the
light of love in them—eyes long since closed. “I
trust you will not think me trite if I say, God bless
you,” murmured dad.</p>
<p>“I won’t think you trite at all,” said Gwendoline
Gerald, approaching nearer to dad. “I think it very
nice.”</p>
<p>“And would you think me trite if I—?”</p>
<p>Dad’s meaning was apparent for Gwendoline’s
golden head bent toward him and dad’s lips just
brushed the fair brow.</p>
<p>“I’m very glad. I think Bob will make a good
husband. He will have to set himself a high mark
though, to deserve you, my dear.”</p>
<p>“That’s just what I keep telling her myself,” observed
Bob. He experienced anew a touch of that
chaotic feeling but didn’t give way to it on account of
dad’s being there.</p>
<p>“Don’t set the mark too high, or you may leave
me far behind,” laughed Gwendoline Gerald. “By
the way I’ve asked Dolly to be first bridesmaid and
she has consented. Said she supposed that was the
‘next best thing,’ though I can’t imagine what she
meant.”</p>
<p>“That’s jolly,” said Bob. He thrilled at these little
delicious details of the approaching event. “But I
suppose we should be going now.”</p>
<p>“Is it the opera?” asked dad.</p>
<p>Bob answered that it was. “She insisted on coming
for me in her car,” he laughed. “Would have had
one myself now if I had imagined anything like this.
It was rather sudden, you know.”</p>
<p>“It looks as if I made him do it,” said the girl with
a laugh. “I went right to his office, and that, after
his refusing me once, when I proposed to him.”</p>
<p>“Did you do that, Bob?”</p>
<p>“Well, I didn’t believe she meant it. Did you?”
To Miss Gerald.</p>
<p>“That’s telling,” said Gwendoline, and looked so
inviting in that wonderful opera costume, so white
and tall and alluring, so many other things calculated
to fire a young man’s soul, that Bob had difficulty not
to resort to extreme masculine measures to make her
tell.</p>
<p>“Hope you have a pleasant evening,” observed dad
politely as they went out together, a couple the neighbors
might well find excuse to stare at.</p>
<p>“Oh, I guess we’ll manage to pull through,” said
Bob.</p>
<p>Their first evening out all alone by themselves in
great, big gay New York! It was nice and shadowy,
too, in the big limousine where the dim light spiritualized
the girl’s beauty.</p>
<p>“Tell now,” he urged, “what I asked you in there?”</p>
<p>“Did I mean it?” Her starry eyes met his. “Perhaps
a little bit. But I’m glad you didn’t accept. I’m
glad it came out the other way,” she laughed.</p>
<p>Bob forgot there was a possibility of some one peering
in and seeing them. Those laughing lips were
such a tremendous lure. Then they both sat very
still. Wheels sang around them; there was magic in
the air.</p>
<p>“Just think of it!” said Bob with sudden new elation.</p>
<p>“What?”</p>
<p>“Why, there’ll be nights and nights like this,” he
said, as if he had made an important new discovery.</p>
<p>“And ‘then some’!” added the classical young goddess
non-classically and gaily, as they turned into the
Great White Way.</p>
<p class='line' style='text-align:center;margin-top:1.5em;'>THE END</p>
<hr class='pb'/>
<p class='line' style='text-align:center;'>By FREDERIC S. ISHAM</p>
<div class='poetry-container'><div class='lgp'>
<p class='line0'>The Strollers. Illustrated by Harrison Fisher. 12mo, Cloth, $1.50</p>
<p class='line0'>Under the Rose. Illustrated by Howard Chandler Christy, 12mo, Cloth, $1.50</p>
<p class='line0'>Black Friday. Illustrated by Harrison Fisher, 12mo, Cloth, $1.50</p>
<p class='line0'>The Lady of the Mount. Illustrated by Lester Ralph, 12mo, Cloth, $1.50</p>
<p class='line0'>Half a Chance. Illustrated by Herman Pfeifer, 12mo, Cloth, $1.50</p>
<p class='line0'>The Social Buccaneer. Illustrated by W. B. King, 12mo, Cloth, $1.50</p>
<p class='line0'>A Man and His Money. Illustrated by Max J. Spero, 12mo, Cloth, $1.25 Net</p>
<p class='line0'>Aladdin from Broadway. Illustrated by William Thatcher Van Dresser, 12mo, Cloth, $1.25 Net</p>
</div>
</div> <div style='clear:both'/> <!-- end poetry block -->
<SPAN name="endofbook"></SPAN>
<div style="break-after:column;"></div><br />